E-text prepared by David Edwards, Martin Pettit, and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images
generously made available by Internet Archive (https://archive.org)



Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this
      file which includes the original illustrations.
      See 59904-h.htm or 59904-h.zip:
      (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/59904/59904-h/59904-h.htm)
      or
      (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/59904/59904-h.zip)


      Images of the original pages are available through
      Internet Archive. See
      https://archive.org/details/tonyheroorbraveb00alge


Transcriber's note:

      Text enclosed by underscores is in italics (_italics_).

      Text enclosed by plus signs is in bold face (+bold+).





[Illustration: Tony set to work with rapid hands to tie the prostrate
tramp hand and foot.--(See page 73.)]


TONY, THE HERO;

--Or,--

A Brave Boy's Adventures With a Tramp.

BY HORATIO ALGER, JR.,

Author of
"Tom, the Bootblack;" "Joe's Luck;" "Frank Fowler, the Cash Boy;"
"Tom Temple's Career;" "Tom Thatcher's Fortune;"
"The Errand Boy," etc., etc.

Illustrated.


[Illustration: Logo]






New York.
A. L. Burt, Publisher.

Copyright 1890, by A. L. Burt.



CONTENTS.

    CHAPTER                                             PAGE
         I.  THE TWO WANDERERS.                            7
        II.  THE FARM-HOUSE.                              14
       III.  RUDOLPH'S DISAPPOINTMENT.                    20
        IV.  SETTING A TRAP.                              26
         V.  AN ATTEMPT AT BURGLARY.                      33
        VI.  ABNER'S RUSE.                                37
       VII.  A STRANGE HOTEL.                             47
      VIII.  TONY HIRES OUT AS A COOK AND HOUSEKEEPER.    54
        IX.  THE FACE AT THE WINDOW.                      61
         X.  THE TRAMP'S UNEXPECTED DEFEAT.               68
        XI.  THE PRISONER.                                74
       XII.  TONY STARTS OUT ONCE MORE.                   81
      XIII.  TONY GETS A PLACE.                           88
       XIV.  TONY'S RIVAL.                                92
        XV.  THE BOYS' DUEL.                              96
       XVI.  RUDOLPH ESCAPES AND SEES AN ADVERTISEMENT.  103
      XVII.  THE LADY AT THE ST. NICHOLAS.               110
     XVIII.  TWO CONSPIRATORS.                           116
       XIX.  THE WICKED COMPACT.                         123
        XX.  THE FIGHTING QUAKER.                        130
       XXI.  RUDOLPH HEARS OF TONY.                      134
      XXII.  RUDOLPH FINDS TONY.                         137
     XXIII.  THE NEGLECTED WELL.                         142
      XXIV.  THE DEED IS DONE.                           145
       XXV.  "I HOLD YOU TO THE BOND."                   152
      XXVI.  TONY'S ESCAPE.                              159
     XXVII.  TONY IS DISCHARGED.                         166
    XXVIII.  THE WORLD BEFORE HIM.                       173
      XXIX.  A STRANGE ADVENTURE.                        180
       XXX.  BREAKFAST AT THE ST. NICHOLAS.              187
      XXXI.  TONY AND HIS GUARDIAN SET UP HOUSEKEEPING.  194
     XXXII.  HOME AGAIN.                                 201
    XXXIII.  CAPTAIN GREGORY LOVELL.                     208
     XXXIV.  TONY ASTONISHES HIS OLD FRIENDS.            215
      XXXV.  TONY'S BAD LUCK.                            223
     XXXVI.  "I HATE YOU!"                               230
    XXXVII.  MRS. MIDDLETON AND HER LOVER.               236
   XXXVIII.  A STORMY INTERVIEW.                         240
     XXXIX.  TONY'S ESCAPE.                              243
        XL.  ALL'S WELL THAT ENDS WELL.                  249
             WHITMARSH'S REVENGE.                        254
             THE BOY IN THE BUSH.                        264
             THE MIDNIGHT RIDE.                          273
             A THOUSAND A YEAR.                          281
             A. L. BURT'S PUBLICATIONS                     1



TONY, THE HERO.




CHAPTER I.

THE TWO WANDERERS.


A man and a boy were ascending a steep street in a country town in
Eastern New York. The man was tall and dark-complexioned, with a
sinister look which of itself excited distrust. He wore a slouch hat,
which, coming down over his forehead, nearly concealed from view his
low, receding brow. A pair of black, piercing eyes looked out from
beneath the brim. The first impression produced upon those who met him
was that he was of gipsy blood, and the impression was a correct one.
Where he was born no one seemed to know; perhaps he did not himself
know, for all his life he had been a wanderer, but English was the
tongue that he spoke, and, apart from the gipsy dialect, he knew no
other.

His companion was a boy of fourteen. Between the two there was not
the slightest resemblance. Though embrowned by exposure to the sun
and the wind, it was easy to see that the boy was originally of light
complexion. His hair was chestnut and his eyes blue. His features were
regular and strikingly handsome, though, owing to the vagrant life
he was compelled to lead, he was not able to pay that attention to
cleanliness which he might have done if he had had a settled home.

It was five o'clock in the afternoon, and the boy looked weary. He
seemed scarcely able to drag one foot after the other. His companion
turned upon him roughly.

"What are you dawdling that way for, Tony?" he demanded. "You creep
like a boy of three."

"I can't help it, Rudolph," said the boy, wearily; "I'm tired."

"What business have you to be tired?"

"I've walked far to-day."

"You've walked no farther than I. I don't dawdle like you."

"You're a man. You're stronger than I am, Rudolph."

"And you're a milksop," said the man contemptuously.

"I'm nothing of the sort," said the boy, with a flash of spirit. "I'm
not made of cast-iron, and that's why I can't stand walking all day
long. Besides, I have had no dinner."

"That isn't my fault, is it?"

"I didn't say it was, but it makes me weak for all that."

"Well," said Rudolph, "perhaps you're right. I feel like eating
something myself. We'll go to some house and ask for supper."

Tony looked dissatisfied.

"I wish we were not obliged to beg our meals," he said; "I don't like
it."

"Oh, you're getting proud, are you?" sneered Rudolph. "If you've got
money to pay for your supper, we won't beg, as you call it."

"Why can't we do as other people do?" asked Tony.

"What's that?"

"Live somewhere, and not go tramping round the country all the time. It
would be a good deal pleasanter."

"Not for me. I'm a vagrant by nature. I can't be cooped up in one
place. I should die of stagnation. I come of a roving stock. My mother
and father before me were rovers, and I follow in their steps."

The man spoke with animation, his eye flashing as he gazed about him,
and unconsciously quickened his pace.

"Then, I'm not like you," said Tony, decidedly. "I don't want to be a
tramp. Were my father and mother rovers like yours?"

"Of course they were," answered Rudolph, but not without hesitation.
"Ain't I your uncle?"

"I don't know. Are you?" returned Tony, searchingly.

"Haven't I told you so a hundred times?" demanded Rudolph, impatiently.

"Yes," said the boy, slowly, "but there's no likeness between us.
You're dark and I am light."

"That proves nothing," said the elder tramp, hastily. "Brothers are
often as unlike. Perhaps you don't want to look upon me as a relation?"

The boy was silent.

"Are you getting ashamed of me?" demanded Rudolph, in a harsh tone.

"I am ashamed of myself," said Tony, bitterly. "I'm nothing but
a tramp, begging my bread from door to door, sleeping in barns,
outhouses, in the fields, anywhere I can. I'm as ignorant as a boy of
eight. I can just read and that's all."

"You know as much I do."

"That don't satisfy me. When I grow up I don't want to be----"

Tony hesitated.

"You don't want to be like me. Is that it?" asked Rudolph, angrily.

"No, I don't want to be like you," answered Tony, boldly. "I want to
have a home, and a business, and to live like other people."

"Humph!" muttered Rudolph, fixing his eyes thoughtfully upon his young
companion. "This is something new. You never talked like that before."

"But I've felt like that plenty of times. I'm tired of being a tramp."

"Then you're a fool. There's no life so free and independent. You can
go where you please, with no one to order you here nor there, the scene
changing always, instead of being obliged to look always upon the same
people and the same fields."

"What's the good of it all? I'm tired of it. I've got no home, and
never had any."

"You've got no spirit. You're only fit for a farm-boy or an apprentice."

"I wish I was either one."

"Sit down here if you are tired," said the man, abruptly, throwing
himself down under a wide-spreading tree by the roadside.

Tony stretched himself out at a little distance, and uttered a sign of
relief as he found himself permitted to rest.

"Have you been thinking of this long?" asked Rudolph.

"Of what?"

"Of not liking to be a tramp?"

"Yes."

"You have not spoken of it before."

"I've been thinking of it more lately."

"How did that come?"

"I'll tell you," said Tony. "Don't you remember last week when we
passed by a school house? It was recess, and the boys were out at play.
While you were away a few minutes, one of the boys sat down by me and
talked. He told me what he was studying, and what he was going to do
when he got older, and then he asked me about myself."

"What did you tell him?"

"What did I tell him?" said Tony, bitterly. "I told him that I was a
tramp, and that when I got older I should be a tramp still."

"Well," said Rudolph, sharply, "what then?"

"The boy told me I ought to get some regular work to do, and grow into
a respectable member of society. He said that his father would help me,
he thought; and----"

"So you want to leave me, do you?" demanded Rudolph, fiercely. "Is that
what you're coming to, my chicken?"

"It isn't that so much as the life you make me lead. I want to leave
that, Rudolph."

"Well, you can't do it," said the man, shortly.

"Why not?"

"I say so, and that's enough."

Tony was silent for a moment. He was not greatly disappointed, for he
expected a refusal. He changed the subject.

"Rudolph," he said, "there's something else I want to ask you about."

"Well?"

"Who am I?"

"Who are you? A young fool," muttered the tramp, but he appeared a
little uneasy at the question.

"I want to know something about my father and mother."

"Your mother was my sister. She died soon after you were born."

"And my father?"

"He was put in jail for theft, and was shot in trying to make his
escape. Does that satisfy you?"

"No, it doesn't, and what's more, I don't believe it," said Tony,
boldly.

"Look here," said Rudolph, sternly. "I've had enough of your insolence.
Do you see this strap?"

He produced a long leather strap, which he drew through his fingers
menacingly.

"Yes, I see it."

"You'll feel it if you ain't careful. Now get up. It's time to be
moving."




CHAPTER II.

THE FARM-HOUSE.


"Where are we going to stop to-night?" asked Tony ten minutes later.

"There," answered Rudolph, pointing out a farm-house, a little to the
left.

"Suppose they won't let us."

"They will admit us into their barn, at least, if we play our cards
right. Listen to what I say. You are to be my son."

"But I am not your son."

"Be silent!" said the other tramp, "and don't you dare to contradict
me. You have been sick, and are too weak to go farther."

"That is a lie, Rudolph."

"That doesn't matter. If they believe it, they won't turn us away.
Perhaps they will let you sleep in the house."

"Away from you?"

"Yes."

Tony was puzzled. It seemed as if Rudolph wanted him to be more
comfortably provided for than himself, but the boy knew him too well
not to suspect that there was some concealed motive for this apparent
kindness.

"Well, what are you thinking about?" demanded Rudolph, suspiciously, as
he observed the boy's earnest gaze.

"Why do you want me to sleep in the house?" he asked.

"I will tell you. When all the family are asleep, I want you to steal
down stairs, open the back door, and let me in."

"What for?" asked the boy, startled.

"Never you mind. Do as I tell you!"

"But I don't want to do it. You never asked me to do that before."

"Didn't I? Well, I had no occasion. I ask you now."

"What are you going to do? Are you going to harm any one?"

"No. I'll tell you what I'm going to do, but mind you, if you breathe a
word to any being, I'll cut your tongue out."

Tony looked troubled, but not frightened.

"Go on," he said.

Rudolph continued in a rapid tone.

"I want money to carry out a plan of importance. This farm belongs to a
farmer who is rich, and who keeps a part of his money in the house."

"How do you know that?"

"A friend of mine stopped there last week, and found out. He put me on
the scent. The old man keeps from two to three hundred dollars in his
desk. I must have that money."

"I don't want to help you in this, Rudolph," said Tony. "I won't betray
you, but you mustn't compel me to be a thief."

"I can't get along without you, and help me you must."

"Suppose we fail?"

"Then we must take to our legs. If we're caught we're both in the same
box. I don't ask you to take any risk that I don't run myself."

Tony was about to remonstrate further, but it was too late. They had
already reached the farm house, and caught sight of the owner standing
under a tree in the front yard.

"Remember!" hissed the older tramp. "Follow my lead, or I'll beat you
till you are half dead. Good evening, sir."

This last was said in a humble tone to the farmer, who advanced to the
gate.

"Good evening," said the farmer, ingeniously.

He was a man of sixty, roughly dressed to suit his work, with grizzled
hair, a form somewhat bowed, and a face seamed with wrinkles. He had
been a hard worker, and showed abundant traces of it in his appearance.

"We are very tired and hungry, my boy and I," whined Rudolph. "We've
traveled many miles since morning. Would you kindly give us some supper
and a night's lodging?"

"My wife'll give you something to eat," said the old man. "Thank
Heaven! we've got enough for ourselves and a bit for the poor besides.
But I don't know about lodging. I don't like to take in strangers that
I know nothing about."

"I don't blame you, sir," said Rudolph, in a tone of affected humility.
"There's many rogues going round the country, I've heard, but I'm a
poor, hardworking man."

"Then why are you not at work?"

"Times are hard, and I can get nothing to do. I am in search of work. I
can do almost anything. I'm a carpenter by trade."

Rudolph knew no more of the carpenter's trade than the man in the moon,
but that would do as well as any other.

"Where are you from?"

"From Buffalo," he answered, with slight hesitation.

"Is business dull there?"

"Nothing doing."

"Well, my friend, you haven't come to the right place. There's nothing
but farming done here."

"I don't know anything about that," said Rudolph, hastily, for he had
no disposition to be set to work in the fields.

"I don't need any extra hands," said the farmer.

"I am glad of that," thought the tramp.

"Go round to the back door, and I will speak to my wife about supper,"
said the old man.

"Come, Tony," said Rudolph, motioning to take the boy's hand, but Tony
did not see fit to notice the movement, and walked in silence by his
side.

A motherly-looking old woman made her appearance at the back door.

"Come in," she said. "Come right in, and sit down to the table. Abner,
make room for the poor man and his son."

Abner was a stalwart youth of eighteen, hard-handed and muscular. He
was the only permanent "hired man" employed on the farm. In haying
time there were others transiently employed.

A farmer's table is plentiful, though homely. The two tramps made an
abundant meal, both doing justice to the homely fare. The farmer's wife
looked on with hospitable satisfaction. She could not bear to have
anybody hungry under her roof.

"You'll excuse our appetite, ma'am," said Rudolph, "but we've had
nothing to eat since breakfast."

"Eat as much as you like," said she. "We never stint anybody here. Is
that your son?"

"Yes, ma'am."

Tony bent his eyes upon his plate, and frowned slightly. He wanted to
deny it, but did not dare.

"He don't look a bit like you," said the woman. "He's light, and you're
very dark."

"His mother was light," said Rudolph. "He takes after her."

"How old is he?"

"Tony, tell the lady how old you are."

"Fourteen."

"He is well grown of his age."

"Yes; he will make a good-sized man. He's been sick."

"Has he? What has been the matter?"

"I don't know. Poor folks like us can't call in a doctor."

"He don't look sick," said the farmer's wife, thoughtfully.

"He's delicate, though he don't look it. It's sleeping out in the open
air, I expect."

"Do you have to sleep out in the open air?"

"Yes; we can't afford to pay for lodgings, and people won't take us
into their houses. I don't mind myself--I'm tough--but Tony can't stand
it as well as I can."

While this conversation was going on, Tony fixed his eyes upon his
plate. He was annoyed to have such falsehoods told about him; but if he
should utter a word of objection he knew there would be an explosion of
wrath on the part of his guardian, and he remained silent.

The farmer's wife was a simple-minded, kind-hearted woman, and though
Tony did not look at all delicate, she never thought of questioning
the statement of Rudolph. Indeed she was already revolving in her mind
inviting the boy to sleep in the house. She was rather prejudiced in
favor of Rudolph by his show of parental solicitude.

When supper was over, having in the meantime consulted her husband, she
said to Rudolph:

"My husband says you may sleep in the barn, if you don't smoke. We can
find a bed for your son with Abner. You won't mind taking him into your
room?"

"He can come," said Abner, good-naturedly.

So it was arranged. At half-past eight, for they retired at that early
hour in the farm house, Rudolph left the fireside, and sought the barn.
As he left the room he looked suspiciously at Tony, and shook his head
warningly.




CHAPTER III.

RUDOLPH'S DISAPPOINTMENT.


Abner slept in a large room in the attic. It had been roughly
partitioned off, and was not even plastered. The beams were plainly
visible. Upon nails which had been driven into them hung Abner's
limited wardrobe. There were two cot-beds in the room, as a part of the
year the farmer employed more than one hired man.

"You can sleep there, youngster," said Abner, pointing to one of the
beds. "This is my bed."

"Thank you," said Tony, politely.

"I s'pose you've traveled round considerable," said Abner, with
curiosity.

"Yes, a good deal."

"Do you like it?"

"No; I'm tired of it."

"How do you make your livin'?"

"As we can. We often go hungry."

"Why don't your father settle down somewhere?"

Tony thought of disclaiming the relationship implied, but he reflected
that Rudolph would be angry, and merely answered:

"He prefers to travel round."

"Was you ever in New York?" asked Abner.

"Do you mean the city of New York? Yes."

"I'd like to see it," said Abner, regarding Tony with new respect.
"I've heard a sight about it. It's powerful big, isn't it?"

"It's very large."

"There's as many as a thousand houses, isn't there?"

"There's a hundred thousand, I should think," answered Tony.

"Sho? you don't say so!" exclaimed Abner, awestruck. "I'd like to go
there."

"Didn't you ever visit the city?"

"No; I never traveled any. I never was more'n fifteen miles from home.
Dad wouldn't let me. When I'm a man, I'm bound to see the world."

"Ain't you a man now?" inquired Tony, surveying his Herculean
proportions with astonishment.

"No; I'm only eighteen."

"You're as big as a man."

"Yes, I'm pooty big," said Abner, with a complacent grin. "I can do a
man's work."

"I should think you might. I thought you were more than four years
older than me. I'm fourteen."

"I guess I weigh twice as much as you."

"I'm not small of my age," said Tony, jealously.

"Maybe not. I'm a regular bouncer. That's what dad says. Why, I'm half
as big again as he is."

"Does he ever lick you?" asked Tony, smiling.

"I'd like to see him try it," said Abner, bursting into a roar of
laughter. "He'd have to get upon a milkin' stool. Does your dad lick
you?"

"No," answered Tony, shortly.

"He looks as if he might sometimes. He's kinder fractious-looking."

Tony did not care to say much on the subject of Rudolph. He felt that
it was his policy to be silent. If he said anything he might say too
much, and if it got to Rudolph's ears, the man's vindictive temper
would make it dangerous for him.

"We get along pretty well," he said, guardedly. "Do you get up early?"

"Four o'clock. You won't have to, though."

"What time do you get breakfast?"

"Half-past five, after I've milked and done the chores. You must be up
by that time, or you won't get anything to eat."

"That's pretty early," thought Tony. "I don't see the use of getting up
so early."

"I guess I'll go to sleep," said Abner. "I'm tuckered out."

"Good-night, then," said Tony.

"Good-night."

The young giant turned over, closed his eyes, and in five minutes was
asleep.

Tony did not compose himself to sleep so readily, partly because Abner
began to snore in a boisterous manner, partly because he felt disturbed
by the thought of the treachery which Rudolph required at his hands.

Tony was only a tramp, but he had an instinct of honor in him. In the
farm house he had been kindly treated and hospitably entertained. He
felt that it would be very mean to steal down in the dead of night
and open the door to his companion in order that he might rob the
unsuspecting farmer of his money. On the other hand, if he did not do
this, he knew that he would be severely beaten by Rudolph.

"Why am I tied to this man?" he thought. "What chance is there of my
ever being anything but a tramp while I stay with him?"

He had thought this before now, but the circumstances in which he now
found himself placed made the feeling stronger. He had been often
humiliated by being forced to beg from door to door, by the thought
that he was a vagrant, and the companion of a vagrant, but he had not
been urged to actual crime until now. He knew enough to be aware that
he ran the risk of arrest and imprisonment if he obeyed Rudolph. On the
other hand, if he refused, he was sure of a beating.

What should he do?

It was certainly a difficult question to decide, and Tony debated it in
his own mind for some time. Finally he came to a determination. Rudolph
might beat him, but he would not be guilty of this treachery.

He felt better after he had come to this resolve, and the burden being
now off his mind, he composed himself to sleep.

He did not know how long he slept, but he had a troubled dream. He
thought that in compliance with his companion's order he rose and
opened the door to him. While Rudolph was opening the farmer's desk,
he thought that heavy steps were heard, and Abner and the farmer
entered the room, provided with a lantern. He thought that Rudolph and
himself were overpowered and bound. Just as he reached this part he
awaked, and was reassured by hearing Abner's heavy breathing.

"I'm glad it's a dream," he thought, breathing a sigh of relief.

At this instant his attention was called by a noise upon the panes of
the only window in the room.

He listened, and detected the cause.

Some one was throwing gravel stones against it.

"It's Rudolph!" he thought instantly. "He's trying to call my
attention."

He thought of pretending to be asleep, and taking no notice of the
signal. But he feared Abner would awake, and ascertain the meaning of
it. He decided to go to the window, show himself, and stop the noise if
he could.

He rose from his bed, and presented himself at the window. Looking
down, he saw the dark figure of Rudolph leaning against the well-curb,
with his eyes fixed on the window.

"Oh, you're there at last," growled Rudolph. "I thought I'd never wake
you up. Is the man asleep?"

"Yes," said Tony.

"Then come down and let me in."

"I would rather not," said Tony, uneasily.

"What's the fool afraid of?" answered Rudolph, in a low, menacing tone.

"The man might wake up."

"No danger. Such animals always sleep heavily. There's no danger, I
tell you."

"I don't want to do it," said Tony. "It would be mean. They've treated
me well, and I don't want to help rob them."

"Curse the young idiot!" exclaimed Rudolph, in low tones of
concentrated passion. "Do you mean to disobey me?"

"I can't do as you wish, Rudolph. Ask me anything else."

"I wish I could get at him!" muttered Rudolph, between his teeth. "He
never dared to disobey me before. Once more! Will you open the door to
me?" demanded Rudolph.

Tony bethought himself of an expedient. He might pretend that Abner was
waking up.

"Hush!" he said, in feigned alarm. "The man is waking up. Get out of
sight quick."

He disappeared from the window, and Rudolph, supposing there was really
danger of detection, hurriedly stole away to the barn where he had been
permitted to lodge.

He came out half an hour later, and again made the old signal, but this
time Tony did not show himself. He had made up his mind not to comply
with the elder tramp's demands, and it would do no good to argue the
point.

"I wish I knew whether he was asleep, or only pretending, the young
rascal," muttered Rudolph. "I must manage to have him stay here another
night. That money must and shall be mine, and he shall help to get it
for me."




CHAPTER IV.

SETTING A TRAP.


At half-past five Tony got up. He would have liked to remain in bed
two hours longer, but there was no chance for late resting at the farm
house. Rudolph, too, was awakened by Abner, and the two tramps took
their seats at the breakfast table with the rest of the family.

Rudolph furtively scowled at Tony. To him he attributed the failure of
his plans the night before, and he was furious against him--the more so
that he did not dare to say anything in presence of the farmer's family.

"Where are you going to-day?" asked the farmer, addressing Rudolph.

"I am going to walk to Crampton. I may get employment there."

"It is twelve miles away. That's a good walk."

"I don't mind it for myself. I mind it for my son," said Rudolph,
hypocritically.

"He can stay here till you come back," said the farmer, hospitably.

"If you're willing to have him, I will leave him for one more night,"
said Rudolph. "It'll do him good to rest."

"He can stay as well as not," said the farmer. "When are you coming
back?"

"Perhaps to-night, but I think not till to-morrow."

"Don't trouble yourself about your son. He will be safe here."

"You are very kind," said the elder tramp. "Tony, thank these good
people for their kindness to you."

"I do thank them," said Tony, glancing uneasily at the other.

When breakfast was over, Rudolph took his hat, and said:

"I'll get started early. I've a long walk before me."

Tony sat still, hoping that he would not be called upon to join him.
But he was destined to be disappointed.

"Come and walk a piece with me, Tony," said Rudolph.

Reluctantly Tony got his hat, and set out with him.

As long as they were in sight and hearing, Rudolph spoke to him gently,
but when they were far enough for him to throw off the mask safely, he
turned furiously upon the boy.

"Now, you young rascal," he said, roughly, "tell me why you didn't obey
me last night."

"It wasn't safe," said Tony. "We should both have been caught."

"Why should we? Wasn't the man asleep?"

"He stirred in his sleep. If I had moved about much, or opened the
door, it would have waked him up."

"You are a coward," sneered Rudolph. "When I was of your age, I
wouldn't have given up a job so easily. Such men sleep sound. No matter
if they do move about, they won't wake up. If you had had a little more
courage, we should have succeeded last night in capturing the money."

"I wish you'd give it up, Rudolph," said Tony, earnestly.

"You don't know what you're talking about," said the tramp, harshly.
"You're a milksop. The world owes us a living, and we must call for it."

"I'd rather work than steal."

"There's no work to be had, and we must have money. More depends on it
than you think. But we've got one more night to work in."

"What do you mean to do?" asked Tony, uneasily.

"Thanks to my management, you will sleep in the same room to-night.
Look round the house during the day; see if the key's in the desk. If
you can get hold of the money, all the better. In that case, come and
hide it in that hollow tree, and we can secure it after the hue and cry
is over. Do you hear?"

"Yes."

"But, if there is no chance of that, look out for me at midnight. I
will throw gravel against your window as a signal. When you hear it,
steal down stairs, with your shoes in your hands, and open the door to
me. I will attend to the rest. And mind," he added, sternly, "I shall
take no excuses."

"Suppose I am caught going down stairs?"

"Say you are taken sick. It will be easy enough to make an excuse."

"Are you going to Crampton?" asked Tony.

"Of course not. Do you think I am such a fool as to take a long walk
like that?"

"You said you were going."

"Only to put them off the scent. I shall hide in yonder wood till
night. Then I will find my way back to the farmhouse."

"Do you want me to go any farther with you?"

"No; you can go back now if you want to. Don't forget my directions."

"I will remember them," said Tony, quietly.

The two parted company, and Tony walked slowly back to the farm. He was
troubled and perplexed. He was in a dilemma, and how to get out of it
he did not know.

It was not the first time that he thought over his relations to Rudolph.

As far back as he could remember he had been under the care of this
man. Sometimes the latter had been away for months, leaving him in
the charge of a woman whose appearance indicated that she also was
of Gipsy descent. He had experienced hunger, cold, neglect, but had
lived through them all, tolerably contented. Now, however, he saw that
Rudolph intended to make a criminal of him, and he was disposed to
rebel. That his guardian was himself a thief, he had reason to know. He
suspected that some of his periodical absences were spent in prison
walls. Would he be content to follow his example?

Tony answered unhesitatingly, "No." Whatever the consequences might be,
he would make a stand there. He had reason to fear violence, but that
was better than arrest and imprisonment. If matters came to the worst,
he would run away.

When he had come to a decision he felt better. He returned to the farm
and found Abner just leaving the yard with a hoe in his hand.

"Where are you going?" he asked.

"To the corn field."

"May I go with you?"

"If you want to."

So Tony went out to the field with the stalwart "hired man," and kept
him company through the forenoon.

"That's easy work," said Tony, after a while.

"Do you think you can do it?"

"Let me try."

Tony succeeded tolerably well, but he could not get over the ground so
fast as Abner.

"Why don't you hire out on a farm?" asked Abner, as he took back the
hoe.

"I would if I could," answered Tony.

"Why can't you? Won't your father let you?"

"He wants me to go round with him," answered Tony.

"Wouldn't he take me instead of you?" asked Abner, grinning. "I'd like
to travel round and see the world. You could stay here and do farm
work."

"If he and the farmer agree to the change, I will," answered Tony, with
a smile.

At noon they went back to the farm house to dinner. Tony stared with
astonishment at the quantity of food Abner made away with. He concluded
that farm work was favorable to the appetite.

The afternoon passed rapidly away, and night came. Again Tony went up
into the attic to share Abner's room. He got nervous as the night wore
on. He knew what was expected of him, and he shrank from Rudolph's
anger. He tried to go to sleep, but could not.

At last the expected signal came. There was a rattling of gravel stones
upon the window.

"Shall I lie here and take no notice?" thought Tony.

In this case Rudolph would continue to fling gravel stones, and
Abner might wake up. He decided to go to the window and announce his
determination.

When Rudolph saw him appear at the window, he called out:

"Come down quick, and open the door."

"I would rather not," answered Tony.

"You must!" exclaimed Rudolph, with a terrible oath. "If you dare to
refuse, I'll flay you alive."

"I can't do it," said Tony, pale but resolute. "You have no right to
ask it of me."

Just then Tony was startled by a voice from the bed:

"Is that your father? What does he want?"

"I would rather not tell," said Tony.

"You must!" said Abner, sternly.

"He wants me to open the door and let him into the house," Tony
confessed, reluctantly.

"What for?"

"He wants to get your master's money."

"Ho, ho!" said Abner. "Well, we'll go down and let him in."

"What!" exclaimed Tony, in surprise.

"Call from the window that you will be down directly."

"I don't want to get him into trouble."

"You must, or I shall think you are a thief, too."

Thus constrained, Tony called out that he would come down at once.

"I thought you'd think better of it," muttered Rudolph. "Hurry down,
and waste no time."

Five minutes later, Abner and Tony crept down stairs, the former armed
with a tough oak stick.




CHAPTER V.

AN ATTEMPT AT BURGLARY.


Unsuspicious of danger, Rudolph took a position on the door-step.
He was incensed with Tony for having given him so much unnecessary
trouble, and he was resolved to give the boy a lesson.

It was quite dark in the shadow of the house, and when the door opened,
Rudolph, supposing, of course, it was Tony who had opened it, seized
the person, whom he saw but dimly, by the arm, exclaiming venomously,
as he tried to reach him:

"I'll teach you to keep me waiting, you young rascal."

He was not long in finding out his mistake.

Abner was considerably larger and more muscular than the tramp, and he
returned the compliment by shaking off Rudolph's grasp, and seizing him
in his own vise-like grasp.

"You'll teach me, will you, you villain," retorted Abner. "I'll teach
you to come here like a thief."

"Let go," exclaimed the tramp, as he felt himself shaken roughly.

"Not till I've given you a good drubbing," returned Abner, and he began
to use his cudgel with effect on the back and shoulders of the tramp.
"You've come to the wrong house, you have."

Rudolph ground his teeth with ineffectual rage. He lamented that he
had not a knife or pistol with him, but he had made so sure of easy
entrance into the house, and no resistance, that he had not prepared
himself. As to brute force, he was no match for Abner.

"The boy betrayed me!" he shrieked. "I'll have his life."

"Not much," said Abner. "You'll be lucky to get away with your own. It
isn't the boy. I was awake, and heard you ask him to let you in. Now
take yourself off."

As he said this he gave a powerful push, and Rudolph reeled a moment
and sank upon the ground, striking his head with violence.

"He won't try it again," said Abner, as he shut to the door and bolted
it. "I guess he's got enough for once."

Tony stood by, ashamed and mortified. He was afraid Abner would class
him with the tramp who had just been ignominiously expelled from the
house. He was afraid he, too, would be thrust out of doors, in which
case he would be exposed to brutal treatment from Rudolph. But he
did not need to fear this. Abner had seen and heard enough to feel
convinced that Tony was all right in the matter, and he did not mean to
make the innocent suffer for the guilty.

"Now let us go to bed, Tony," he said in a friendly manner. "You don't
want to go with him, do you?"

"No," said Tony. "I never want to see him again."

"I shouldn't think you would. He's a rascal and a thief."

"I hope you don't think I wanted to rob the house," said Tony.

"No; I don't believe you're a bit like him; what makes you go with him?"

"I won't any more."

"He isn't your father?"

"No; I don't know who my father is."

"That's strange," said Abner, who had seen but little of the world.
Every one that he knew had a father, and knew who that father was. He
could not realize that any one could have an experience like Tony's.

"I wish I did know my father," said Tony, thoughtfully. "I'm alone in
the world now."

"What do you mean to do?"

"I'll go off by myself to-morrow, away from Rudolph. I never want to
see him again."

"Have you got any money?"

They had now got back into the chamber, and were taking off their
clothes.

"I've got five cents," answered Tony.

"Is that all?"

"Yes; but I don't mind; I'll get along somehow."

Tony had always got along somehow. He had never--at least not for long
at a time--known what it was to have a settled home or a permanent
shelter. Whether the world owed him a living or not, he had always got
one, such as it was, and though he had often been cold and hungry,
here he was at fourteen; well and strong, and with plenty of pluck
and courage to carry with him into the life struggle that was opening
before him. Abner's training had been different, and he wondered at the
coolness with which Tony contemplated the future. But he was too sleepy
to wonder long at anything, and with a yawn he lapsed into slumber.

Tony did not go to sleep immediately. He had need to be thoughtful.
He had made up his mind to be his own master henceforth, but Rudolph,
he knew, would have a word to say on that point. In getting away
the next morning he must manage to give the tramp a wide berth. It
would be better for him to go to some distant place, where, free from
interference, he could make his own living.

There was another thought that came to him. Somewhere in the world he
might come across a father or mother, or more distant relative--one of
whom he would not be ashamed, as he was of the companion who tried to
draw him into crime. This was the last thought in his mind, as he sank
into a sound sleep from which he did not awaken till he was called to
breakfast.




CHAPTER VI.

ABNER'S RUSE.


To say that Rudolph was angry when he recovered from the temporary
insensibility occasioned by his fall, would be a very mild expression.
He had not only been thwarted in his designs, but suffered violence and
humiliation in presence of the boy of whom he regarded himself as the
guardian. He thirsted for revenge, if not on Abner, then on Tony, whom
it would be safer to maltreat and abuse.

Anger is unreasonable, and poor Tony would have fared badly, if he had
fallen into Rudolph's clutches just then. It made no difference that
Abner had exonerated Tony from any share in the unpleasant surprise he
had met. He determined to give him a severe beating, nevertheless.

There is an old proverb: "You must catch your hare before you cook it."
This did not occur to the tramp. He never supposed Tony would have the
hardihood or courage to give him the slip.

The remainder of the night spent by Tony in sleeping was less
pleasantly spent by Rudolph in the barn.

He meant to be up early, as he knew he was liable to arrest on account
of his last night's attempt, and lie in wait for Tony, who, he
supposed, would wait for breakfast.

He was right there. Tony did remain for breakfast. The farmer--Mr.
Coleman--had already been informed of Rudolph's attempted burglary, and
he did Tony the justice to exonerate him from any share in it.

"What are you going to do, my boy?" he asked at the breakfast table.

"I am going to set up for myself," answered Tony, cheerfully.

"That's right. Have nothing more to do with that man. He can only do
you harm. Have you got any money?"

"I've got five cents."

"That isn't enough to buy a farm."

"Not a very large one," said Tony, smiling.

Abner nearly choked with laughter. This was a joke which he could
appreciate.

"I don't think I'll go to farming," continued Tony.

"You can stay here a week or two," said the farmer, hospitably, "till
you get time to look round."

"Thank you," said Tony. "You are very kind, but I don't think it will
be safe. Rudolph will be on the watch for me."

"The man you came with?"

"Yes."

"Guess he won't touch you while I'm round," said Abner.

"I don't think he'll want to tackle you again," said Tony.

"Didn't I lay him out though?" said Abner, with a grin. "He thought it
was you, ho! ho!"

"He didn't think so long," said Tony. "I haven't got such an arm as
you."

Abner was pleased with this compliment to his prowess, and wouldn't
have minded another tussle with the tramp.

"Where do you think that chap you call Rudolph is?" he asked.

"He's searching for me, I expect," said Tony. "If I'm not careful he'll
get hold of me."

Just then a neighbor's boy, named Joe, came to the house on an errand.
He was almost Tony's size. He waited about, not seeming in any hurry to
be gone.

"Abner," said the farmer, "if you've got nothing else to do, you may
load up the wagon with hay, and carry it to Castleton. We shall have
more than we want."

"All right," said Abner.

"May I go, too? May I ride on the hay?" asked Joe, eagerly.

"Will your father let you?" asked the farmer.

"Oh, yes; he won't mind."

"Then you may go," was the reply. "Do you want to go, too, Tony?"

Tony was about to say yes, when an idea seized him.

"If the other boy goes, Rudolph will think it is I, and he will follow
the wagon. That will give me a chance of getting off in another
direction."

"So it will," said Abner. "What a head-piece you've got," he added,
admiringly. "I wouldn't have thought of that."

Abner's head-piece was nothing to boast of. He had strength of body,
but to equalize matters his mind was not equally endowed.

The plan was disclosed to Joe, who willingly agreed to enter into it.
This was the more feasible because he was of about Tony's size, and
wore a hat just like his.

The hay was loaded, and the wagon started off with Abner walking
alongside. Joe was perched on top, nearly buried in the hay, but with
his hat rising from the mass. This was about all that could be seen of
him.

They had gone about half a mile when from the bushes by the roadside
Rudolph emerged. He had seen the hat, and felt sure that Tony was
trying to escape him in this way.

"Well," said Abner, with a grin, as he recognized his midnight foe,
"how do you feel this morning?"

"None the better for you, curse you!" returned the tramp, roughly.

Abner laughed.

"That's what I thought," he said, cracking his whip.

Rudolph would like to have punished him then and there for his
humiliation of the night before, but Abner looked too powerful as he
strode along manfully with vigorous steps. Besides, he had a heavy whip
in his hand, which the tramp suspected would be used unhesitatingly if
there were occasion. The prospect was not inviting. But, at any rate,
Rudolph could demand that Tony be remitted to his custody.

"Where's my boy?" asked the tramp, keeping at a safe distance.

"Didn't know you had a boy," said Abner.

"I mean that villain Tony. Is that he on the load of hay?"

"Kinder looks like him," answered Abner, grinning.

Rudolph looked up and caught sight of the hat.

"Come down here, Tony," he said sternly.

Joe, who had been instructed what to do, answered not a word.

"Come down here, if you know what's best for you," continued the tramp.

"Guess he's hard of hearing," laughed Abner.

"Stop your wagon," said Rudolph, furiously; "I want to get hold of him."

"Couldn't do it," said Abner, coolly. "I'm in a hurry."

"Will you give me the boy or not?" demanded the tramp, hoarsely.

"He can get off and go along with you if he wants to," said Abner. "Do
you want to get down, Tony?"

"No!" answered the supposed Tony.

"You see, squire, he prefers to ride," said Abner. "Can't blame him
much. I'd do it in his place."

"Where are you going?" demanded the tramp, who hadn't discovered that
the voice was not that of Tony.

"I'm going to Castleton," answered Abner.

"Are you going to leave the hay there?"

"Yes, that's what I calc'late to do."

"How far is it?"

"Six miles."

"I'll walk along, too."

"Better not, squire, you'll get tired."

"I'll risk that."

Of course Rudolph's plan was manifest. When the hay was unloaded, of
course Tony would have to get down. Then he would get hold of him.

"You can do just as you've a mind to," said Abner. "You'll be company
to Tony and me, but you needn't put yourself out on our account, hey,
Tony?"

There was a smothered laugh on top of the hay, which the tramp heard.
His eyes snapped viciously, and he privately determined to give Tony a
settlement in full for all his offenses just as soon as he got hold of
him.

So they jogged on, mile after mile. Abner walked on one side, swinging
his whip, and occasionally cracking it. The tramp walked on the other
side of the road, and the boy rode along luxuriously embedded in his
fragrant couch of hay. Abner from time to time kept up the tramp's
illusions by calling out, "Tony, you must take keer, or you'll fall
off."

"I'll catch him if he does," said Rudolph, grimly.

"So you will," chuckled Abner. "You'd like to, wouldn't you?"

"Certainly. He is my son," said Rudolph.

"Do you hear that, Tony? He says you're his son," said Abner, grinning
again.

There was another laugh from the boy on the load of hay.

"You won't find anything to laugh at when I get hold of you," muttered
Rudolph.

So they rode into Castleton.

From time to time Abner, as he thought how neatly the tramp had been
sold, burst into a loud laugh, which was echoed from the hay wagon.
Rudolph was not only angry, but puzzled.

"Does the boy hope to escape me?" he asked himself. "If so, he will
find himself badly mistaken. He will find that I am not to be trifled
with."

"Say, squire, what makes you look so glum?" asked Abner. "Maybe it's
because I didn't let you in when you called so late last night. We
don't receive visitors after midnight."

Rudolph scowled, but said nothing.

"How long has the boy been with you?" asked Abner, further.

"Since he was born," answered the tramp. "Ain't I his father?"

"I don't know. If it's a conundrum I give it up."

"Well, I am, and no one has a right to keep him from me," said the
tramp, in a surly manner.

"I wouldn't keep him from you for a minute," said Abner, innocently.

"You are doing it now."

"No, I ain't."

"I can't get at him on that hay."

"He can come down if he wants to. I don't stop him. You can come down
if you want to, Tony," he said, looking up to where the boy's hat was
visible.

Tony did not answer, and Abner continued:

"You see he don't want to come. He'd rather ride. You know he's been
sick," said Abner, with a grin, "and he's too delicate to walk. He
ain't tough, like you and me."

"He'll need to be tough," muttered the tramp, as he thought of the
flogging he intended to give Tony.

"What did you say?"

"Never mind."

"Oh, I don't mind," said Abner. "You can say what you want to. This is
a free country, only you can't do what you've a mind to."

Rudolph wished that he had a double stock of strength. It was very
provoking to be laughed at and derided by Abner without being able
to revenge himself. A pistol or a knife would make him even with the
countryman, but Rudolph was too much of a coward to commit such serious
crimes when there was so much danger of detection and punishment.

At last they entered Castleton.

The hay was to be delivered to a speculator, who collected large
quantities of it, and forwarded over the railroad to a large city.

It had to be weighed, and Abner drove at once to the hay scales.

"Now," thought Rudolph, with exultation, "the boy must come down, and I
shall get hold of him."

"I guess you'd better slide down," said Abner. "I can't sell you for
hay, Tony."

There was a movement, and then the boy slid down, Abner catching him as
he descended.

Rudolph's face changed ominously when he saw that it wasn't Tony who
made his appearance.

"What does this mean?" he demanded furiously.

"What's the matter?"

"This isn't Tony."

"Come to look at him, it isn't," said Abner, with a twinkle in his eye.

"Didn't you say it was Tony?" asked the tramp, exasperated.

"I guess I was mistaken, squire," said Abner, grinning.

"Where is he?"

"I don't know, I'm sure. It seems he didn't come. Guess he must have
given us the slip."

The tramp, unable to control his rage, burst into a volley of
execrations.

"Hope you feel better, squire," said Abner, when he got through.

The tramp strode off, vowing dire vengeance against both Abner and
Tony.

[Illustration: "What does this mean?" demanded the tramp furiously.
"This isn't Tony."--(See page 45.)]




CHAPTER VII.

A STRANGE HOTEL.


From the upper window in the farm house, which was situated on elevated
ground, Tony saw his old guardian follow Abner. Thus the way was opened
for his escape. He waited, however, a short time to make sure that all
was safe, and then bade farewell to the farmer and his wife, thanking
them heartily for their kindness to him.

"Won't you stay longer with us?" asked the farmer. "You can as well as
not."

"Thank you," answered Tony, "but I wouldn't dare to. Rudolph may be
back for me, and I want to get away before he has a chance."

"Are you going to walk?" asked the farmer's wife.

"Yes," said Tony. "I've only got five cents in my pocket, and I can't
ride far on that."

"I'm afraid you will be tired," said she, sympathetically.

"Oh, I'm used to tramping," returned Tony, lightly. "I don't mind that
at all."

"Can't you put up some dinner for him, wife?" suggested the farmer.
"It'll make him hungry, walking."

"To be sure I will," she replied, and a large supply of eatables were
put in a paper, sufficient to last Tony twenty-four hours, at least.

The farmer deliberated whether he should not offer our hero half
a dollar besides, but he was naturally close, so far as money was
concerned, and he decided in the negative.

So Tony set out, taking a course directly opposite to that pursued
by Abner. In this way he thought he should best avoid the chance of
meeting Rudolph.

He walked easily, not being in any special hurry, and whenever he felt
at all tired he stopped by the way side to rest. Early in the afternoon
he lay down under a tree in the pasture and fell asleep. He was roused
by a cold sensation, and found that a dog had pressed his cold nose
against his cheek.

"Haven't you any more manners, sir?" demanded Tony, good-naturedly.

The dog wagged his tail, and looked friendly.

"It's a hint that I must be on my journey," he thought.

About five o'clock he felt that it was about time to look out for a
night's rest. A hotel was, of course, out of the question, and he
looked about for a farm house. The nearest dwelling was a small one, of
four rooms, setting back from the road, down a lane.

"Perhaps I can get in there," thought Tony.

An old man, with a patriarchal beard, whose neglected and squalid dress
seemed to indicate poverty, was sitting on the door-step.

"Good evening," said Tony.

"Who are you?" demanded the old man, suspiciously.

"I am a poor traveler," said Tony.

"A tramp!" said the old man, in the same suspicious tone.

"Yes, I suppose so," said Tony, although he did not like the title
overmuch.

"Well, I've got nothing for you," said the old man, roughly.

"I don't want anything except the chance to sleep."

"Don't you want any supper?"

"No, I've got my supper here," returned our hero, producing his paper
of provisions.

"What have you got there?" asked the old man, with an eager look.

"Some bread and butter and cold meat."

"It looks good," said the other, with what Tony thought to be a longing
look.

"I'll share it with you, if you'll let me sleep here to-night," said
Tony.

"Will you?" the other answered.

"Yes; there's enough for both of us."

The old man was a miser, as Tony suspected. He was able to live
comfortably, but he deprived himself of the necessaries of life in
order to hoard away money. His face revealed that to Tony. He had
nearly starved himself, but he had not overcome his natural appetites,
and the sight of Tony's supper gave him a craving for it.

"I don't know," he said, doubtfully. "If I let you sleep here you might
get up in the night and rob me."

Tony laughed.

"You don't look as if you had anything worth stealing," he said,
candidly.

"You're right, quite right," said old Ben Hayden, for this was his
name. "I've only saved a little money--a very little--to pay my funeral
expenses. You wouldn't want to take that?"

"Oh, no," said Tony. "I wouldn't take it if you'd give it to me."

"You wouldn't? why not?"

"Because you need it yourself. If you were a rich man it would be
different."

"So it would," said old Hayden. "You're a good boy--an excellent boy.
I'll trust you. You can stay."

"Then let us eat supper," said Tony.

He sat down on the door-step, and gave the old man half of his supply
of food. He was interested to see the avidity with which he ate it.

"Is it good?" he asked.

"I haven't eaten anything so good for a long time. I couldn't afford to
buy food."

"I am sorry for you."

"You haven't got any left for breakfast," said the old man.

"Oh, somebody will give me breakfast," said Tony. "I always get taken
care of somehow."

"You are young and strong."

"Yes."

"Do you travel around all the time?"

"Yes; but I hope to get a chance to go to work soon; I'd rather live in
one place."

"You might live with me if I were not so poor," said the old man.

"Thank you," answered Tony, politely; but it did not appear to him that
it was exactly such a home as he would choose.

"Do you live alone?" he asked.

"Yes."

"I didn't know but you might be married."

"I was married when I was a young man, but my wife died long ago."

"Why don't you marry again?" inquired Tony, half in fun.

"I couldn't afford it," answered Hayden, frightened at the suggestion.
"Women have terrible appetites."

"Have they?" returned Tony, amused.

"And I can't get enough for myself to eat."

"Have you always lived here?"

"No; I lived in England when I was a young man."

"What made you leave it?"

"Why do you ask me that?" demanded old Ben, suspiciously.

"Oh, if it's a secret, don't tell me," said Tony, indifferently.

"Who said it was a secret?" said the old man, irritably.

"Nobody that I know of."

"Then why do you ask me such questions?"

The old man surveyed Tony with a look of doubt, as if he thought the
boy were laying a trap for him.

"Don't answer anything you don't want to," said our hero. "I only asked
for the sake of saying something."

"I don't mind telling," said old Ben, more calmly. "It was because I
was so poor. I thought I could do better in America."

"And didn't you?"

"When I was able to work. Now I'm weak and poor, and can't always get
enough to eat."

"Do you own this place?"

"Yes, but it's a very poor place. It isn't worth much."

"I shouldn't think it was," said Tony.

"You're a good lad--an excellent lad. You see how poor I am."

"Of course I do, and I'm sorry for you. I would help you, only I am
very poor myself."

"Have you got any money?" asked Ben, with interest.

"I've got five cents," answered Tony, laughing. "I hope you've got more
than that."

"A little more--a very little more," said Ben, cautiously.

The old miser began to consider whether he couldn't charge Tony five
cents for his lodging, but sighed at the recollection that Tony had
already paid for it in advance by giving him a supper.

When eight o'clock came the miser suggested going to bed.

"I haven't any lights," he said; "candles cost so much. Besides, a
body's better off in bed."

"I'm willing to go to bed," said Tony. "I've walked a good deal to-day,
and I'm tired."

They went into the house. There was a heap of rags in the corner of the
room when they entered.

"That's my bed," said old Ben; "it's all I have."

"I can sleep on the floor," said Tony.

He took off his jacket, and rolled it up for a pillow, and stretched
himself out on the bare floor. He had often slept so before.




CHAPTER VIII.

TONY HIRES OUT AS A COOK AND HOUSEKEEPER.


Tony was not slow in going to sleep. Neither his hard bed nor his
strange bed-chamber troubled him. He could sleep anywhere. That was one
of the advantages of his checkered life.

Generally he slept all night without awaking, but to-night, for some
unknown reason, he awoke about two o'clock. It was unusually light for
that hour, and so he was enabled to see what at first startled him. The
old man was out of bed, and on his knees in the center of the room. He
had raised a plank, forming a part of the flooring, and had raised from
beneath it a canvass bag full of gold pieces. He was taking them out
and counting them, apparently quite unconscious of Tony's presence.

Tony raised himself on his elbow, and looked at him. It occurred to him
that for a man so suspicious it was strange that he should expose his
hoard before a stranger. Something, however, in the old man's look led
him to think that he was in a sleepwalking fit.

"Ninety-five, ninety-six, ninety-seven," Tony heard him count; "that
makes nine hundred and seventy dollars, all gold, good, beautiful gold.
Nobody knows the old man is so rich. There's another bag, too. There
are one hundred pieces in that. Three more, and this will be full, too.
Nobody must know, nobody must know."

He put back the pieces, replaced the bag in its hiding-place, and then
putting back the plank, laid down once more on his heap of rags.

"How uneasy he would be," thought Tony, "if he knew I had seen his
treasures. But I wouldn't rob him for the world, although the money
would do me good, and he makes no use of it except to look at it."

If Tony was honest, it was an instinctive feeling. It could not have
been expected of one reared as he had been. But, singular as it may
seem, beyond a vague longing, he felt no temptation to deprive old Ben
of his money.

"Let him get what satisfaction he can from it," he said to himself. "I
hope he'll keep it till he dies. I am only afraid that some night some
one will see him counting the gold who will want to take it."

Tony went to bed again, and slept till six. Then he was awakened by a
piteous groaning, which he soon found proceeded from the other bed.

"What's the matter?" he asked.

"Who's there?" demanded Ben, terrified.

"It's only I. Don't you remember you let me sleep here last night?"

"O, yes; I remember now. I'm sick; very sick."

"How do you feel?"

"I'm aching and trembling all over. Do you think I am going to die?"
he asked, with a startled look.

"Oh, no, I guess not," said Tony, reassuringly. "Everybody is sick now
and then."

"I never felt so before," groaned Ben. "I'm an old man. Don't you
think--don't you really think I shall die?"

He looked appealingly at Tony, as if the fiat of life and death lay
with him.

Tony, of course, knew nothing of medicine or of diseases, but he had
the sense to understand that the old man would be more likely to
recover if his terror could be allayed, and he said, lightly:

"Oh, it's only a trifle. You've taken cold, very likely. A cup of hot
tea would be good for you."

"I haven't any tea," groaned Ben. "It costs a great deal, and I'm very
poor. I can't afford to buy it."

Tony smiled to himself, remembering the hoard of gold under the floor,
but he would not refer to it, at least not at present.

"Are you sure you haven't got a little money?" he asked. "If you want
to get well, you must be made comfortable."

"It's hard to be poor," whined Ben.

"I guess you've got some money," said Tony. "You'd better let me go to
the store, and buy some tea and a fresh roll for you."

"How much will it cost?" asked Ben.

"I can get some bread, and tea, and sugar for thirty or forty cents,"
answered Tony.

"Forty cents! It's frightful!" exclaimed Ben. "I--I guess I'll do
without it."

"Oh, well, if you prefer to lie there and die its none of my business,"
said Tony, rather provoked at the old man's perverse folly.

"But I don't want to die," whined Ben.

"Then do as I tell you."

Tony jumped out of bed, unrolled his coat, and put it on.

"Now," said he, "I'm ready to go for you, if you'll give me the money."

"But you may take it, and not come back," said the old man,
suspiciously.

"If you think you can't trust me, you needn't," said Tony. "I've
offered to do you a favor."

"I think I'll go myself," said Ben.

He tried to raise himself, but a twinge of pain compelled him to lie
down again.

"No, I can't," he said.

"Well, do you want me to go for you?"

"Yes," answered Ben, reluctantly.

"Then give me the money."

Still more reluctantly Ben produced twenty-five cents from his pocket.

"Isn't that enough?" he asked.

"Better give me more," said Tony.

He produced ten cents more, and vowed it was all the money he had in
the world.

Tony decided not to contradict his assertion, but to make this go as
far as it would. He put on his hat and started out. He meant also to
call at the doctor's, and asked him to call round, for he thought it
possible that the old man might be seriously sick.

First, however, he went to the grocery store, which had only just been
opened, and obtained the articles which he had mentioned to Ben as
likely to do him good.

Next he called at the house of the village doctor, obtaining the
direction from the storekeeper. In a few words he made known his errand.

"Old Ben sick!" said Doctor Compton. "What's the matter with him?"

Tony explained how he appeared to be affected.

"How did you happen to be in his house?" asked the doctor, with
curiosity. "You are not a relation of his, are you?"

Tony laughed.

"I don't think he would let me into the house if I were," he said. "He
would be suspicious of me."

"Then how does it happen that you were with him?"

Tony explained.

"He has been repaid for taking you in," said the doctor. "I'll put on
my hat, and go right over with you."

After Tony left the house, old Ben lay and tormented himself with the
thought that the boy would never come back. "Just as like as not," he
thought, "he will go off with the money, and leave me here to die."

Then he tried to sit up, but without success.

Half an hour later he was relieved by seeing the door open, and Tony
enter. But he looked dismayed when he saw the doctor.

"What did you come for?" he asked, peevishly.

"To see what I can do for you, Mr. Hayden. Let me feel your pulse."

"But I can't afford to have a doctor. I am poor, and can't pay you,"
whined old Ben.

"We'll talk about that afterward."

"You can't charge when I didn't send for you."

"Make your mind easy. I won't charge for this visit. Let me feel your
pulse."

Old Ben no longer opposed medical treatment, finding it would cost
nothing.

"Am I going to die?" he asked, with an anxious look.

"You need nourishing food and care, that is all," was the reply. "You
have had a chill, and you are reduced by insufficient food."

"I have some bread and tea here," said Tony.

"Do you know how to make the tea?" asked the doctor.

"Yes," said Tony.

"Then make a fire, and boil it at once. And, by the way, Mr. Hayden
needs somebody to be with him for a few days. Can you stay with him and
look after him?"

"If he will give me money enough to buy what he needs," said Tony.

"Will you do it, Mr. Hayden?" asked the doctor.

Old Ben whined that he was poor, and had no money, but the doctor
interrupted him impatiently.

"That's all nonsense," he said. "You may not have much money, but
you've got some, and you'll die if you don't spend some on yourself.
If you don't agree to it, I shall advise this boy here to leave you to
your fate. Then your only resource will be to go to the poor-house."

This proposal was not acceptable to Ben, who was unwilling to leave
the house where his treasures were concealed. He therefore reluctantly
acceded to the doctor's conditions, and Tony got his breakfast. Despite
his sickness, he relished the tea and toast, and for the moment forgot
what it cost.

"Well," thought Tony to himself with a smile, "I've got a situation as
plain cook and housekeeper. I wonder how long it will last, and what'll
come of it. I don't believe Rudolph will look for me here."

But in this Tony was mistaken.




CHAPTER IX.

THE FACE AT THE WINDOW.


Tony was not only cook and housekeeper, but he was sick-nurse as well.
Nor were his duties easy. The main difficulty was about getting money
to buy what was absolutely necessary. This was very aggravating,
especially since Tony knew what he did about Ben's hidden treasure.
Moreover, he had reason to suspect that Ben had more money concealed
elsewhere.

One morning Tony went to Ben for money, saying:

"There isn't a scrap of food in the house, except a little tea."

"You can make some tea. That will do," said Ben.

"It may do for you, but it won't for me," said Tony, resolutely. "I
ain't going to stay here to starve."

"It costs a sight to support two people," whined the old man.

"I don't know about that. I've only spent two dollars in six days. You
don't call that much, do you?"

"Two dollars!" ejaculated the old man, terrified. "O, it's too much. I
am ruined!"

"Are you?" said Tony, coolly. "Then all I can say is, you're easy
ruined. I want half a dollar."

"I shan't give it to you," snarled Ben.

"Do you mean to starve?"

"I won't part with all I have. You are robbing me."

"That won't make much difference, as you'll be dead in three days,"
said Tony.

"What?" almost shrieked Ben, in dismay. "Who told you so? The doctor?"

"No."

"You ain't goin' to murder me, are you?"

"No; you are going to murder yourself."

"What do you mean?" demanded Ben, peevishly.

"You're not willing to buy anything to eat," explained Tony, "and you
can't live above three days on nothing."

"Is that all? What made you frighten me so?" complained Ben, angrily.

"I only told you the truth. Are you going to give me the money?"

"Perhaps you'll tell me where I am to get so much money?" said Ben, in
the same tone.

"I will tell you if you want me to," answered Tony.

"Where?" asked Ben, eagerly.

"Under the floor," returned Tony, composedly.

"What!" screamed Ben, in consternation.

"Just where I said. There's plenty of money under that plank."

"Who told you?" groaned the old man, livid with terror. "Have--have you
taken any?"

"Not a dollar. It's all there. You needn't be frightened."

"Have you been spying when I was asleep?" demanded Ben, incensed.

"No, I haven't. That ain't my style," answered Tony, independently.

"You did. I know you did."

"Then you know too much."

"How could you find out, then?"

"If you want to know, I'll tell you. The first night I was here you got
up in your sleep and took up the board. Then you drew out two bags of
gold pieces and counted them."

"Oh, I'm ruined! I'm undone!" lamented Ben, when he found that his
secret had been discovered.

"I don't see how you are."

"I shall be robbed. There's only a little there--only a few dollars to
bury me."

"I guess you mean to have a tall funeral, then," said Tony, coolly.
"There's as much as a thousand dollars there."

"No, no--only fifty," answered the old man.

"There's no use talking, I know better. If you don't believe it,
suppose I take up the bags and count the pieces."

"No, no!"

"Just as you say. All is, you've got plenty of money, and I know it,
and if you ain't willing to use some of it, I'll go off and leave you
alone."

"Don't go," said Ben, hastily. "You're a good boy. You wouldn't rob a
poor old man, would you?"

"Nor a rich old man either; but I don't mean to starve. So give me
fifty cents, and I'll go over to the store and get some fresh bread and
butter, and tea and sugar."

"No matter about the butter. It costs too much."

"I want butter myself. My constitution requires it," said Tony. "You
needn't eat it if you don't want to."

Ben groaned again, but he produced the money required, and Tony soon
returned from the grocery store with small supplies of the articles he
had named.

"Now we'll have some breakfast," said Tony, cheerfully. "Don't you feel
hungry?"

"A--a little," acknowledged Ben, reluctantly. "I wish I wasn't. It
costs so much to live."

"I don't think it costs you much," said Tony. "This morning I'm going
to give you a boiled egg besides your tea and toast."

"Where did you get it?"

"I bought it at the store."

"I can't afford it," groaned the old man.

"You may as well eat it as it's here. I bought two, one for myself."

"How much did you pay?"

"Three cents for two."

Ben groaned again, but when breakfast was ready he showed an unusually
good appetite, and did not refrain from partaking of the egg, expensive
as it was.

Dr. Compton came in the next morning, and pronounced the old man better
and stronger.

"Shall I be able to get up soon, doctor?" asked Ben.

"In a day or two, I think."

Ben heaved a sigh of relief.

"I'm glad of it," he said. "I can't afford to be sick."

"Has it cost you much?" asked the doctor, amused.

"It costs a sight to live. He eats a good deal," indicating Tony.

"He's a growing boy; but he's worth all he costs you. You'd better
ask him to stay with you a few weeks, till your strength is entirely
recovered."

"No, no; I can't afford it," said Ben, hastily. "He's a good boy; but
he's very hearty--very hearty."

Tony laughed.

"Don't vex him, doctor," said our hero. "I'm tired of staying here. I
want to get out on the road again. There isn't much fun in staying shut
up here."

Ben looked relieved. He had feared that Tony would be reluctant to go.

"Right, boy," he said, "you're right. It's a dull place. You'll be
better off to go."

"You have been lucky to have him here during your sickness," said the
doctor. "Without his care, or that of some one else, you would probably
have died."

"But I won't die now?" asked old Ben, anxiously, peering up into the
doctor's face.

"Not at present, I hope. But you must live better than you have been
accustomed to do or you will fall sick again."

"I shall be glad to get away," said Tony, hurriedly, to the doctor,
outside of the house. "I'm used to tramping, and I can't stand it much
longer. There's one thing I want to tell you before I go, and I might
as well do it now."

"Go on, my boy."

"I'm afraid the old man will be robbed some time."

"Is there anything to steal?"

"Yes; I think I had better tell you about it."

Tony, in a low tone, imparted to Dr. Compton the discovery he had made
of the old miser's hoards.

"I suspected as much," said the doctor. "I will do what I can to induce
Ben to have the gold moved to a place of safety, but I don't feel
confident of my ability to do it. Such men generally like to have their
hoards within their own reach."

       *       *       *       *       *       *

Two nights later, Tony woke shortly after midnight. It was a bright,
moonlight night, as on the first night he slept there. Again he saw Ben
crouched on the floor, with the plank removed from its place, engaged
in counting his hoards. The old man had recovered enough strength to
get out of bed without assistance. This time, too, he was broad awake.

Tony was not the only witness of the spectacle. Casting his eyes toward
the window he was startled by seeing a dark, sinister face, pressed
against the pane, almost devouring the old man and his gold.

It was a face he well knew, and he trembled not alone for Ben, but for
himself.

_It was the face of Rudolph, the tramp._




CHAPTER X.

THE TRAMP'S UNEXPECTED DEFEAT.


"Has Rudolph tracked me, or is it only accident that has brought him
here?"

This was the thought which naturally suggested itself to our hero, as
in a very disturbed state of mind he stared at Rudolph through the
uncertain light.

He decided that it was accident, for as yet the tramp did not appear
to have discovered him. His eyes were fastened upon old Ben with
unmistakable cupidity. It was the gold that attracted him, and between
him and the possession of the gold it seemed as if there were no
obstacle to intervene. What was the old man's feeble strength, more
feeble still through disease, against this powerful man?

Tony felt the difficulties of the position. Not only would the gold be
taken, but as soon as Rudolph discovered him, as he would, he too would
fall into the power of the tramp.

Old Ben had not yet discovered the sinister face at the window. He was
too busily occupied with his pleasant employment of counting over his
gold for the hundredth time, it might be, to be aware of the dangerous
witness at the window.

But he was speedily aroused by the noise of the window being raised
from the outside.

Then he turned with a startled look which quickly deepened into
astonishment and dismay as he caught the lowering look fixed upon him.
There was more than this. There was recognition besides.

"You here?" he gasped, mechanically gathering up the gold in his
trembling fingers, with the intention of replacing it in the bag.

"Yes, Ben, it's me," answered the tramp, with a sneer. "May I come in?"

"No, no!" ejaculated the old man, hastily.

"I think I must," returned the tramp, in the same mocking tone. "I came
to see you as an old friend, but I never dreamed you were so rich.
That's a pretty lot of gold you have there."

"Rich!" repeated Ben, with his usual whine. "I'm very poor."

"That looks like it."

"It's only a few dollars--enough to bury me."

"Very well, Ben, I'll take charge of it, and when you need burial I'll
attend to it. That's fair, isn't it?"

Rudolph, who had paused outside, now raised the window to its full
height, and despite the old man's terrified exclamations, bounded
lightly into the room.

"Help! help! thieves!" screamed Ben, almost beside himself with terror,
as he spread his feeble hands over the gold which he had so imprudently
exposed.

"Hold your jaw, you driveling old idiot," said Rudolph, harshly, "or
I'll give you something to yell about."

"Help, Tony, help!" continued the old man.

The tramp's eyes, following the direction of Ben's, discovered our hero
on his rude bed in the corner of the room. A quick gleam of exultation
shot from them as he made this discovery.

"Ho, ho!" he laughed with a mirth that boded ill to Tony, "so I've
found you at last, have I? You served me a nice trick the other day,
didn't you? I owe you something for that."

"I hoped I should never set eyes on you again," said Tony.

"I've no doubt you did. You undertook to run away from me, did you? I
knew I should come across you sooner or later."

While this conversation was going on, Ben glanced from one to the other
in surprise, his attention momentarily drawn away from his own troubles.

"Do you know this boy, Rudolph?" he inquired.

"I should think I did," answered the tramp, grimly. "You can ask him."

"_Who is he?_" asked Ben, evidently excited.

"What is that to you?" returned Rudolph. "It's a boy I picked up, and
have taken care of, and this is his gratitude to me, and I've had a
long chase to find him."

"Is this true?" asked Ben, turning to Tony.

"Some of it is true," said our hero. "I've been with him ever since
I could remember, and I ran away because he wanted me to join him in
robbing a house. He calls me his son sometimes, but I know he is not my
father."

"How do you know?" demanded the tramp sternly.

"Didn't you say so just now?"

"It was none of the old man's business, and I did not care what I told
him."

"There's something within me tells me that there's no relationship
between us," said Tony, boldly.

"Is there, indeed," sneered the tramp. "Is there anything within you
tells you you are going to get a good flogging?"

"No, there isn't."

"Then you needn't trust it, for that is just what is going to happen."

He advanced toward Tony in a threatening manner, when he was diverted
from his purpose by seeing the old man hastily gathering up the gold
with the intention of putting it away. Punishment could wait, he
thought, but the gold must be secured now.

"Not so fast, Ben!" he said. "You must lend me some of that."

"I can't," said Ben, hurrying all the faster. "It's all I have, and I
am very poor."

"I am poorer still, for I haven't a red to bless myself with. Come, I
won't take all, but some I must have."

He stooped over, and began to grasp at the gold pieces, some of which
were heaped up in piles upon the floor.

Even the weakest are capable of harm when exasperated, and Ben, feeble
as he was, was gifted with supernatural strength when he saw himself
likely to lose the hoards of a lifetime, and his anger rose to fever
heat against the scoundrel whom he had known years before to be utterly
unprincipled.

With a cry like that of a wild beast he sprang upon the tramp, who, in
his crouching position, was unable to defend himself against a sudden
attack. Rudolph fell with violence backward, striking his head with
great force against the brick hearth. Strong as he was, it was too much
for him, and he lay stunned and insensible, with the blood gushing from
a wound in his head.

The old man stood appalled at the consequence of his sudden attack.

"Have I killed him? Shall I be hanged?" he asked, with anguish.

"No, he's only stunned!" said Tony, springing over the floor with all
his wits about him. "We have no time to lose."

"To run away? I can't leave my gold," said Ben.

"I don't mean that. We must secure him against doing us any harm when
he recovers. Have you got some stout cord?"

"Yes, yes," said Ben, beginning to understand our hero's design. "Stay,
I'll get it right away."

"You'd better, for he may come to any minute."

The old man fumbled round until in some out-of-the-way corner, where
he had laid away a store of odds and ends, he discovered a quantity of
stout cord.

"Will that do?" he asked.

"Just the thing," said Tony.

The boy set to work with rapid hands to tie the prostrate tramp hand
and foot. He was only afraid Rudolph would rouse to consciousness while
the operation was going on, but the shock was too great, and he had
sufficient time to do the job effectually and well.

"How brave you are," exclaimed the old man, admiringly. "I wouldn't
dare to touch him."

"Nor I if he were awake. I didn't think you were so strong. He went
over as if he were shot."

"Did he?" asked the old man, bewildered. "I don't know how I did it. I
feel as weak as a baby now."

"It's lucky for us you threw yourself upon him as you did. A little
more cord, Mr. Hayden. I want to tie him securely. You'd better be
gathering up that gold, and putting it away before he comes to."

"So I will, so I will," said Ben, hastily.

Scarcely was the money put away in its place of concealment, when the
tramp recovered from his fit of unconsciousness, and looked stupidly
around him. Then he tried to move, and found himself hampered by his
bonds. Looking up, he met the terrified gaze of old Ben, and the steady
glance of Tony. Then the real state of the case flashed upon him, and
he was filled with an overpowering rage at the audacity of his late
charge, to whom he rightly attributed his present humiliating plight.




CHAPTER XI.

THE PRISONER.


"Let me up!" roared Rudolph, struggling vigorously with the cords that
bound him.

Ben was terrified by his demonstration, and had half a mind to comply
with his demand. But Tony had his wits about him, and felt that there
was no safety in such a course.

"Don't you do it, Mr. Hayden!" he exclaimed, hastily.

"What! young jackanapes," said the tramp, scowling fiercely. "You dare
to give him this advice?"

"Yes, I do," said Tony, boldly. "He will be a fool if he releases you."

"If he don't I'll kill him and you too," returned Rudolph.

"What shall I do?" added Ben, hopelessly.

He turned for advice to the boy, who was fifty years his junior. Strong
and resolute spirits naturally assume the place of leading at any age.

"Do you know what he'll do if you untie him?" asked Tony.

"What will I do?" demanded Rudolph.

"You will steal this old man's money. It was what you were about to do
when you fell over backwards."

"He threw me over," said the tramp, now gazing resentfully at Ben.

"I didn't mean to," said the terrified old man.

"You almost stunned me."

"I'm very sorry," stammered Ben.

"If you're very sorry, untie them cords and let me up."

"I didn't tie you."

"Who did?"

"The--the boy."

"You _dared_ to do it?" exclaimed Rudolph, turning upon Tony with
concentrated fury.

"Yes, I did," said Tony, calmly. "It was the only way to keep you out
of mischief."

"Insolent puppy; if I only had my hands free I would strangle you both."

"You hear what he says?" said Tony, turning to old Ben. "Are you in
favor of untying him now?"

"No, no!" exclaimed Ben, trembling. "He is a dreadful man. O, why did
he come here?"

"I came for your gold, you fool, and I'll have it yet," said Rudolph,
losing sight of all considerations of prudence.

"What shall I do?" asked the old man, wringing his hands in the excess
of his terror.

"Let me up, and I won't hurt you," said the tramp, finding that he must
control his anger for the present.

"Just now you said you would strangle the both of us, Rudolph."

"I'll strangle you, you cub, but I will do no harm to the old man."

"You will take his gold."

"No."

"Don't you trust him, Mr. Hayden," said Tony. "He will promise anything
to get free, but he will forget all about it when he is unbound."

"I'd like to choke you!" muttered Rudolph, who meant thoroughly what he
said.

"But what shall I do, Tony? I can't have him in here all the time."

"I'll go and call for help to arrest him," said Tony.

"And leave me alone with him?" asked Ben, terrified.

"No; we will lock the door, and you shall go and stay outside till I
come back."

Tony's proposal was distasteful to Rudolph. He had a wholesome dread
of the law, and didn't fancy the prospect of an arrest, especially as
he knew that the testimony of Tony and the old man would be sufficient
to insure him a prolonged term of imprisonment. He made a fresh and
violent struggle which portended danger to his captors.

"Come out quick," said Tony, hastily. "It is not safe for you to stay
here any longer."

The old man followed him nothing loth, and Tony locked the door on the
outside.

"Do you think he will get free?" asked Ben, nervously.

"He may, and if he does there is no safety for either of us till he is
caught again."

"The door is locked."

"But he may get out of the window."

"Oh, my gold! my gold!" groaned Ben. "He may get it."

"Yes, he may; our only hope is to secure him as soon as possible."

"I am so weak I can't go fast. I am trembling in every limb."

"You must conceal yourself somewhere, and let me run on," said Tony,
with decision. "There is no time to be lost."

"I don't know of any place."

"Here's a place. You will be safe here till I come for you."

Tony pointed to an old ruined shed, which they had just reached.

"Will you be sure and come for me."

"Yes; don't be alarmed. Only don't show yourself till you hear my
voice."

Ben crept into the temporary shelter, glad that in his weakened
condition he should not be obliged to go any farther. To be sure he
tormented himself with the thought that even now the desperate tramp
might be robbing him of his treasures. Still he had great confidence in
what Tony had told him, and hope was mingled with his terror.

"He's a brave boy," he murmured. "I am glad he was with me, though he
does eat a sight. Oh, how many wicked men there are in the world."

Tony hurried on to the village, where he lost no time in arousing
a sufficient number to effect the capture of the burglar. He no
longer felt any compunction in turning against his quondam guardian,
recognizing him as his own enemy and the enemy of society.

"I owe him nothing," thought Tony. "What has he ever done for me? He is
not my father. Probably he kidnapped me from my real home, and has made
me an outcast and a tramp like himself. But I will be so no longer. I
will learn a trade, or do something else to earn an honest livelihood.
I mean to become a respectable member of society, if I can."

It took him half an hour before he could rouse the half-dozen men whom
he considered necessary to effect the arrest and get them under way.

Meanwhile Rudolph was not idle.

It may be thought strange that he should have so much difficulty in
freeing himself from the cords with which Tony had bound him. But it
must be remembered that the boy had done his work well. The cord was
stout and strong, and he had had time to tie it in many knots, so that
even if one had been untied, the tramp would have found himself almost
as far from liberty as ever.

After he had been locked in, Rudolph set about energetically to obtain
release. He succeeded in raising himself to his feet, but as his ankles
were tied together this did not do him much good. By main strength he
tried to break the cords, but the only result was to chafe his wrists.

"What a fool I am," he exclaimed at length. "The old man must have
some table-knives about somewhere. With these I can cut the cords."

It was not till some time had elapsed, however, that this very obvious
thought came to him. Further time was consumed in finding the knives.
When found, they--there were two--proved so dull that even if he had
had free use of one of his hands it would not have been found easy to
make them of service. But when added to this was the embarrassment of
his fettered hands, it will not excite surprise that it required a long
time to sever the tough cords which bound him. But success came at
length.

His arms were free, and he stretched them with exultation.

His ankles next demanded attention, but this was a much easier task.

"Now for revenge!" thought the tramp. "The boy shall rue this night's
task, or my name is not Rudolph."

Whatever else he might do, he must secure the miser's gold. He had seen
the hiding-place.

He removed the plank, and there, beneath him, visible in the moonlight,
lay the much-coveted bags of golden treasure.

He rose from the floor, and, with the bags in his hand, jumped out of
the still opened window.

But he was too late. Two strong men seized him, each by an arm, and
said, sternly:

"You are our prisoner."

[Illustration: Tony set to work with rapid hands to tie the prostrate
tramp hand and foot.--(See page 73.)]




CHAPTER XII.

TONY STARTS OUT ONCE MORE.


It was not until after Rudolph's seizure that Ben, who had followed the
extemporized police, discovered the bags of gold in the hands of the
tramp.

"Give me my money!" he shrieked, in excitement and anguish. "Don't let
him carry it off."

"It's safe, Ben," said one of the captors. "But who would have supposed
you had so much money?"

"It isn't much," faltered the old man.

"The bags are pretty heavy," was the significant rejoinder. "Will you
take two hundred dollars apiece for them?"

"No," said the old man, embarrassed.

"Then it seems there is considerable after all. But never mind. Take
them, and take better care of them hereafter."

Ben advanced with as much alacrity as he could summon in his weakness,
and stooped to pick up the bags. He had got hold of them when the
tramp, whose feet were unconfined, aimed a kick at him which completely
upset him.

Even though he fell, however, he did not lose his grip of the bags, but
clung to them while crying with pain.

"Take that, you old fool!" muttered the tramp. "It's the first
instalment of the debt I owe you."

"Take him away, take him away! He will murder me!" exclaimed old Ben,
in terror.

"Come along. You've done mischief enough," said his captors, sternly,
forcing the tramp along.

"I'll do more yet," muttered Rudolph.

He turned to Tony, who stood at a little distance watching the fate of
his quondam companion.

"I've got a score to settle with you, young traitor. The day will come
for that yet."

"I'm sorry for you, Rudolph," said Tony; "but you brought it on
yourself."

"Bah! you hypocrite!" retorted the tramp. "I don't want any of your
sorrow. It won't save you when the day of reckoning comes."

He was not allowed to say more, but was hurried away to the village
lockup for detention until he could be conveyed to more permanent
quarters.

Doctor Compton was among the party who had been summoned by Tony. He
lingered behind, and took Ben apart.

"Mr. Hayden," he said, "I want to give you a piece of advice."

"What is it?" asked the old man.

"Don't keep this gold in your house. It isn't safe."

"Who do you think will take it?" asked Ben, with a scared look.

"None of those here this morning, unless this tramp should escape from
custody."

"Do you think he will?" asked the old man, in terror.

"I think not; but he may."

"If he don't, what danger is there?"

"It will get about that you have money secreted here, and I venture to
say it will be stolen before three months are over."

"It will kill me," said Ben, piteously.

"Then put it out of reach of danger."

"Where?"

"I am going over to the county town, where there is a bank. Deposit it
there, and whenever you want any, go and get it."

"But banks break sometimes," said Ben, in alarm.

"This is an old, established institution. You need not be afraid of it.
Even if there is some danger, there is far less than here."

"But I can't see the money--I can't count it," objected Ben.

"You can see the deposit record in a book. Even if that doesn't suit
you as well, you can sleep comfortably, knowing that you are not liable
to be attacked and murdered by burglars."

The old man vacillated, but finally yielded to the force of the
doctor's reasoning. A day or two later he rode over to the neighboring
town, and saw his precious gold deposited in the vaults of the bank.
He heaved a sigh as it was locked up, but on the whole was tolerably
reconciled to the step he had taken.

We are anticipating, however.

When the confusion incident to the arrest was over, Tony came forward.

"Mr. Hayden," he said, "you are so much better that I think you can
spare me now."

"But," said the old man, startled at the boy's question, "suppose
Rudolph comes back."

"I don't think he can. He will be put in prison."

"I suppose he will. What a bold, bad man."

"Yes, he is a bad man, but I am sorry for him. I don't like to think
of one I have been with so long in the walls of a prison. I suppose it
can't be helped, though."

"How did you come to be with him?" asked the old man, in a tone of
interest.

"I don't know. I have been with him as long as I can remember. You used
to know him, didn't you?"

"A little," said the old man, hastily.

"Where was it?"

"In England--long ago."

"In England. Was he born in England?" asked Tony, in surprise.

"Yes."

"And you, too?"

"Yes, I am an Englishman."

"Do you think I am English, too?" asked the boy, eagerly.

"I think so; yes, I think so," answered Ben, cautiously.

"Have you any idea who I am--who were my parents?"

"No, I don't know," said Ben, slowly.

"Can you guess?"

"Don't trouble me now," said Ben, peevishly. "I am not well. My head is
confused. Some day I will think it over and tell you what I know."

"But if I am not here?"

"I will write it down and give it to the doctor."

"That will do," said Tony. "I know he will keep it for me. Now,
good-by."

"Are you going?"

"Yes, I have my own way to make in the world. I can't live on you any
longer."

"To be sure not," said Ben, hastily. "I am too poor to feed two
persons, and you have a very large appetite."

"Yes," said Tony, laughing, "I believe I have a healthy appetite. I'm
growing, you know."

"It must be that," said old Ben, with the air of one to whom a mystery
had just been made clear. "What is your name?"

"Tony," answered our hero, in surprise at the question.

"No. I mean your full name."

"That is more than I know. I have always been called Tony, or Tony the
Tramp. Rudolph's last name is Rugg, and he pretends that I am his son.
If I were, I should be Tony Rugg."

"You are not his son. He never had any son."

"I am glad to hear that. I shan't have to say now that my father is in
jail for robbery. Good-by, Mr. Hayden."

"Good-by," said Ben, following the boy thoughtfully with his eyes till
he had disappeared round a turn in the road.

"Well," thought Tony, "I've set up for myself now in earnest. Rudolph
can't pursue me, and there is no one else to interfere with me. I must
see what fortune waits me in the great world."

With a light heart, and a pocket still lighter, Tony walked on for
several miles. Then he stopped at a country grocery store, and bought
five cents worth of crackers. These he ate with a good appetite,
slaking his thirst at a wayside spring.

He was lying carelessly on the green sward, when a tin peddler's cart
drove slowly along the road.

"Hallo, there!" said the peddler.

"Hallo!" said Tony.

"Are you travelin'?"

"Yes."

"Do you want a lift?"

"Yes," said Tony, with alacrity.

"Then get up here. There's room enough for both of us. You can hold the
reins when I stop anywhere."

"It's a bargain," said Tony.

"Are you travelin' for pleasure?" asked the peddler, who was gifted
with his share of curiosity.

"On business," said Tony.

"What is your business? You're too young for an agent."

"I want to find work," said Tony.

"You're a good, stout youngster. You'd ought to get something to do."

"So I think," said Tony.

"Ever worked any?"

"No."

"Got any folks?"

"If you mean wife and children, I haven't," answered our hero, with a
smile.

"Ho, ho!" laughed the peddler. "I guess not. I mean father or mother,
uncles or aunts, and such like."

"No, I am alone in the world."

"Sho! you don't say so. Well, that's a pity. Why, I've got forty-'leven
cousins and a mother-in-law to boot. I'll sell her cheap."

"Never mind!" said Tony. "I won't deprive you of her."

"I'll tell you what," said the peddler, "I feel interested in you. I'll
take you round with me for a day or two, and maybe I can get you a
place. What do you say?"

"Yes, and thank you," said Tony.

"Then it's settled. Gee up, Dobbin!"




CHAPTER XIII.

TONY GETS A PLACE.


Toward the close of the next day the tin-peddler halted in front of a
country tavern, situated in a village of moderate size.

"I'm going to stay here over night," he said.

"Maybe they'll let me sleep in the barn," said Tony.

"In the barn! Why not in the house?"

"I haven't got any money, you know, Mr. Bickford."

"What's the odds? They won't charge anything extra for you to sleep
with me."

"You're very kind, Mr. Bickford, but they won't keep me for nothing,
and I don't want you to pay for me."

At this moment the landlord came out on the piazza, and asked the
hostler:

"Where's Sam?"

"Gone home--says he's sick," answered James.

"Drat that boy! It's my opinion he was born lazy. That's what's the
matter with him."

"I guess you're right, Mr. Porter," said James. "The boy don't earn his
salt."

"I wouldn't take him back if I had anybody to take his place."

"Do you hear that, Tony?" said the peddler, nudging our hero.

Tony was quick to take the hint.

He walked to the landlord, and said:

"I'll take his place."

"Who are you?" asked the landlord, in surprise. "I never saw you
before."

"I have just come," said Tony. "I am looking for a place."

"What can you do?"

"Anything you want me to do."

"Have you any references?"

"I can refer to him," said Tony, pointing to the tin peddler.

"Oh, Mr. Bickford," said the landlord, with a glance of recognition.
"Well, that's enough. I'll take you. James, take this boy to the
kitchen, and give him some supper. Then tell him what's to be done.
What's your name, boy?"

"Tony Rugg."

"Very well, Tony, I'll give you three dollars a week and your board as
long as we suit each other."

"I've got into business sooner than I expected," thought Tony.

The hostler set him to work in the barn, and though he was new to the
work, he quickly understood what was wanted, and did it.

"You work twice as fast as Sam," said the hostler, approvingly.

"Won't Sam be mad when he finds I have taken his place?" asked Tony.

"Probably he will, but it's his own fault."

"Not if he's sick."

"He's no more sick than I am. He only wants to get a day or two off."

"Well, I'm glad he left a vacancy for me," said Tony.

"Where did you work last?" asked the hostler.

"Nowhere."

"Never worked? Then how did you live?"

"I traveled with my guardian."

"Were you rich?" asked James, rather impressed by Tony's answer.

"No; I just went round and lived as I could. I didn't like it, but I
couldn't help it. I had to go where Rudolph chose to lead me."

"Where is he now?"

"I don't know. I got tired of being a tramp, and ran away from him."

"You did right," said James, who was a steady man, and looked forward
to a snug home of his own ere long. "All the same, Mr. Porter wouldn't
have taken you if he had known you were a tramp."

"I hope you won't tell him, then. I don't want to be a tramp any
longer."

"No; I won't tell him. I want you to stay here. I'd rather have you
than Sam."

"Thank you. I'll try to suit."

Tony was assigned to a room in the attic. There were two beds in this
chamber, one being occupied by James. He slept soundly, and was up
betimes in the morning. After breakfast, Mr. Bickford, the tin peddler,
made ready to start.

"Good-by, Tony," he said, in a friendly manner. "I'm glad you've got a
place."

"I wouldn't have got it if I hadn't you to refer to," said Tony.

"The landlord didn't ask how long I'd known you," said Bickford,
smiling. "However, I guess I know enough of you to give you a
recommend. Good luck to you."

As the peddler drove away, Tony noticed a big, overgrown boy, who was
just entering the hotel yard.

"That's Sam," said the hostler. "He don't know he's lost his place."




CHAPTER XIV.

TONY'S RIVAL.


Sam was about two inches taller than Tony, red haired and freckled,
with a big frame, loosely put together. He was a born bully; and many
were the tricks he had played on smaller boys in the village. He liked
his place at the hotel because he was no longer obliged to go to
school; but he was too lazy to fulfill the duties satisfactorily. His
father was a blacksmith, of surly disposition, very much like Sam's,
who was generally believed to ill-treat his wife, a meek, uncomplaining
woman, who filled the position of a household drudge.

Sam strutted into the yard with the air of a proprietor. He took no
particular notice of Tony, but accosted James. The latter made a signal
to Tony to be silent.

"Well, have you just got along?" asked the hostler.

"Ye-es," drawled Sam.

"What made you go home yesterday afternoon, and not come back?"

"I didn't feel well," said Sam, nonchalantly.

"What was the matter with you?"

"I had a sort of headache."

"Do you think Mr. Porter can afford to pay you wages and let you go
home three times a week in the middle of the afternoon?"

"I couldn't work when I was sick of course," said Sam.

"You're mighty delicate, getting sick two or three times a week."

"Couldn't help it," said Sam, unconcerned.

"I suppose you have come to work this morning?"

"Ye-es, but I can't work very hard--I ain't quite got over my headache."

"Then you'll be glad to hear that you won't have to work at all."

"Ain't there anything to do?" asked Sam, with an air of relief.

"Yes, there's plenty to do, but your services ain't required. You're
discharged!"

"What!" exclaimed Sam, his eyes lighting up with anger.

"Mr. Porter's got tired of your delicate health; it interferes too much
with business. He's got a tougher boy to take your place."

"Where is he?" demanded Sam, with an ominous frown.

"There," answered the hostler, pointing out our hero, who stood quietly
listening to the conversation.

Sam regarded Tony with a contemptuous scowl. So this was the boy
who had superseded him. He hated him already for his presumption in
venturing to take his place.

"Who are you?" he demanded, roughly.

"Your successor," answered Tony, coolly.

He knew that his answer would make Sam very angry, but he was not
afraid of him, and felt under no particular obligations to be polite.

"You won't be my successor long," retorted Sam.

"Why not?"

"What business had you to take my place?"

"The landlord hired me."

"I don't care if he did. He hired me first."

"Then you'd better go to him and complain about it. It's none of my
business----"

"It's _my_ business," said Sam, with emphasis.

"Just as you like."

"Will you give up the place?"

"No," said Tony. "You must think I'm a fool. What should I give it up
for?"

"Because it belongs to me."

"I don't see that; I suppose Mr. Porter has a right to hire anybody he
likes."

"He had no right to give you my place."

"That's his business. What shall I do next, James?"

"Go to the barn and shake down some hay for the horses."

"All right."

Sam walked off, deeply incensed, muttering threats of vengeance against
Tony.

Three days later a boy entered the stable, and calling for Tony,
presented the following missive:


     "If you ain't a coward, meet me to-morrow night at seven o'clock,
     back of the school house, and we'll settle, by fighting, which
     shall have the place, you or I. If you get whipped, you must clear
     out, and leave it to me.

     "SAM PAYSON."


Tony showed the note to the hostler.

"Well, Tony, what are you going to do about it?" asked James, curiously.

"I'll be on hand," said Tony, promptly. "He won't find it so easy to
whip me as he thinks."




CHAPTER XV.

THE BOYS' DUEL.


Sam Payson felt perfectly safe in challenging Tony to single combat. He
had measured him with his eye, and seen that he was two inches shorter,
and probably twenty pounds lighter. But appearances were deceitful, and
he had no idea that Tony had received special training, which he lacked.

This was the way it had happened:

In the course of his extensive wanderings, Tony had attracted the
attention of a certain pugilist who was a friend of Rudolph.

"I'll tell you what, Rudolph," said the pugilist, "you can make
something of that boy."

"How?" asked the tramp.

"I'll teach him to box, and you can get an engagement for him in a
circus."

"Do it if you like," said the tramp. "It won't do him any harm."

So Tony received a gratuitous course of lessons in boxing, which were
at last interrupted by a little difficulty between his teacher and the
officers of the law, resulting in the temporary confinement of the
former. The lessons were never resumed, but they had gone so far that
Tony was quite a skillful boxer for a boy.

He, too, had measured Sam, and felt quite sure of being able to conquer
him, and that with ease. He did not, however, mention the grounds of
his confidence to James, when the latter expressed some apprehension
that he would find Sam too much for him.

"Don't be alarmed, James," said Tony, quietly. "I'm enough for him."

"He's bigger than you," said James.

"I know that, but he's clumsy."

"He's slow, but he's pretty strong."

"So am I."

"You've got pluck, and you deserve to beat, Tony," said his friend.

"I mean to," answered Tony. "Come along and see that it's all fair."

"I will if I can get away. Will you give up your place if you are
licked?"

"Yes," replied Tony, "I'll give up my place and leave the village."

"I don't believe Mr. Porter will take Sam back."

"I see you are expecting I will be whipped," said Tony, laughing; "but
you're mistaken. Sam isn't able to do it."

James feared that Tony overestimated his prowess, but earnestly hoped
that the boy, in whom he already felt a strong interest, would achieve
the victory.

Meanwhile, Sam had made known the duel which was about to take place.
He confidently anticipated victory, and wanted the village boys to
be witnesses of the manner in which he was going to polish off that
interloper.

"I'll learn him to cut me out of my place," he said, boastfully; "I'll
learn him to mind his own business."

"Will you get your place again if you lick him?" asked one of his
companions.

"Of course I will."

"Suppose he won't give it up?"

"Then I'll lick him every day till he's glad to clear out. All you boys
know I don't stand no nonsense."

The result of Sam's boastful talk was that about a hundred boys
collected about the school house to witness the boys' duel.

Many of them who had suffered from Sam's bullying disposition would
have been glad to see him worsted, but none anticipated it.

Nothing was known of Tony except that he was considerably smaller and
lighter, and probably weaker. It was generally thought that he would
not be able to hold out long, and that Sam would achieve an easy
victory.

Tony tried to be on hand at the time appointed, but he had more than
usual to do, and it was five minutes past seven when he entered the
field, accompanied by James.

There had been various speculations as to the cause of his delay.

"He won't come," said Sam, with a sneer; "he's afraid."

"What'll you do if he don't come?" asked John Nolan.

"What will I do? I'll pitch into him wherever I see him."

"Didn't he accept your challenge?"

"Yes, he accepted, but he's thought better of it, likely."

"There he comes!" shouted a small boy.

All eyes were turned upon Tony, as he entered the field, with James at
his side.

"I'm sorry to have kept you waiting, boys," said our hero, politely.

"We concluded you'd backed out," said Sam, with a sneer.

"That isn't my style," returned Tony, with a quiet smile. "I had more
to do than usual to-night."

"You've still more to do," said Sam, jeeringly. "I pity you."

"Do you? You're very kind," said Tony, unmoved.

"Oh, don't thank me too soon."

"Then I won't. When are the exercises to commence?"

"He takes it cool," said Nolan.

"Oh, it's only show off," said Sam. "You'll see how he'll wilt down
when I get hold of him."

The two boys stripped off coat and vest, and faced each other. Tony was
wary and watchful, and quietly looked into the eyes of his adversary,
showing no disposition to begin.

Sam began business by thrusting his right fist violently in his face,
or rather trying to do so. With scarcely an effort Tony parried the
blow, and returned it quick as lightning, striking Sam full in the nose.

Sam was not only maddened, but disagreeably surprised, especially when
he discovered that blood was trickling from the injured organ. He was
still more incensed by the murmur of applause which followed from the
crowd of boys. Had the applause been elicited by his success, he would
have enjoyed it, but now it was quite a different matter.

He breathed an audible curse, and, losing all prudence, began to let
drive at Tony with each fist in rapid succession, with the intention
of overpowering him. But, unfortunately for him, this exposed him to
attack, and a couple of forcible blows in his face warned him that this
was too dangerous.

Tony stood upright, as cool and collected as at first. He had warded
off every blow of his adversary, and thus far was untouched.

There was a murmur of surprise among the boys. They had come to see
Tony used up, and all the using up had proved to be from the other
side. James was as much delighted as surprised. He could not repress
clapping his hands, a movement which was quickly imitated by the boys.

"Tony knows how to take care of himself," he thought. "That's why he
took matters so coolly. I didn't half believe him when he told me there
was no danger."

Sam felt humiliated and maddened. He regretted now that he had
undertaken a task which seemed every moment more formidable. What! was
it possible that he, Sam Payson, the crack fighter of the village, was
being ignominiously whipped, and that by a smaller boy. He felt that if
he permitted this his prestige would be forever gone, and with it the
influence which he so much prized. He must make one desperate effort.

"If I can only get hold of him," he thought, "I can shake the life out
of him."

He tried to grasp Tony round the body, intending to throw him violently
down upon the ground; but our hero was too quick for him, and showered
the blows upon him with such rapidity that, blinded and overwhelmed,
Sam himself fell on his back.

Instead of following up the victory, Tony drew off and let his
adversary rise. Sam renewed the attack so wildly that in two minutes he
was again lying flat.

"That's enough, Sam! You're whipped," shouted the boys.

But Sam was not convinced. He renewed the attack once more, but there
was no hope for him now.

He got up sullenly, and, in a voice nearly choked with rage, said:

"I'll be even with you yet, see if I don't."

"Hurrah for the stranger!" shouted the boys enthusiastically, as they
crowded around our hero.

"Boys," said Tony, modestly, "I'm much obliged to you for your
congratulations. Was it a fair fight?"

"Yes, yes."

"Then it's all right. Don't say anything to him about it. He feels bad,
as I should do in his place. I haven't any ill will toward him, and I
hope he hasn't toward me."

This speech made Tony a still greater favorite and the boys, making a
rush, took him on their shoulders, and bore him in triumph to the inn.
Poor Sam slunk home, suffering keener mortification than he had ever
before experienced in his life.




CHAPTER XVI.

RUDOLPH ESCAPES AND SEES AN ADVERTISEMENT.


Leaving Tony for a short time, we must return to Rudolph, whom we
left in charge of a self-constituted body of police on his way to the
station-house.

Of course there was no regular prison in the village. There was not
properly even a station-house. But under the engine house was a
basement room, which was used as a lock-up. It was not often used, for
few rogues of a serious character disturbed the tranquility of the
village. Occasionally a man was put in who had disturbed the peace
while under the influence of liquor, but even such cases were rare.

When first arrested Rudolph was disposed to be violent and abusive.
His disappointment was keen, for he was just congratulating himself on
the possession of the miser's gold. Five minutes later, and he would
probably have been able to make good his escape. Mingled with his
disappointment was a feeling of intense hostility against Tony for his
part in defeating his plans.

"I'll be revenged upon him yet," he muttered between his teeth.

"What did you say?" asked one of his captors.

"Nothing," answered Rudolph.

"I thought I heard you say something."

"I said I was tired."

"Then you will have a chance to rest in the lock-up."

Rudolph frowned, but said nothing.

They reached the lockup. The door was opened, and he was led in. A
small oil lamp was lighted, and set on the floor.

"Where are the handcuffs?" asked one of the captors.

"I don't know. They haven't been needed for so long that they have been
mislaid."

"They won't be needed now. The man can't get out."

Rudolph's face betrayed satisfaction, but he thought it prudent to say
nothing.

"There's your bed," says Moses Hunt, who had Rudolph by the arm,
pointing to a rude cot in the corner.

Rudolph threw himself upon it.

"I'm dead tired," he said, and closed his eyes.

"He'll be quiet enough. We can leave him alone," said Hunt.

"All right."

The door was locked, and Rudolph was left alone.

When five minutes had elapsed--time enough for his captors to get
away--he rose in bed, and looked about him.

Beside the bed in which he was lying there was no other furniture in
the room than a wooden chair.

He got up and walked about.

"I must get away from this if I can," thought the tramp, "and before
morning. I am glad they didn't put on handcuffs. Let me see, how shall
I manage it."

He looked about him thoughtfully.

It was a basement room, lighted only by windows three feet wide and a
foot high in the upper part of the room.

"I should like to set fire to the building, and burn it up," thought
the tramp. "That would cost them something. But it wouldn't be safe.
Like as not I would be burnt up myself, or, at any rate, be taken again
in getting away. No, no; that won't do."

"I wonder if I can get through one of those windows?" was the next
thought that came into his mind.

He stood on the chair, and as the room was low-slatted he found he
could easily reach the windows in question.

He shook them, and found to his joy that it would be a comparatively
easy thing to remove one of them.

"What fools they are," he muttered contemptuously. "Did they really
expect to keep me here. They must think I am a green hand."

He removed the window, and by great effort succeeded in raising himself
so that he might have a chance of drawing himself through the aperture.
It did not prove so easy as he expected. He did, however, succeed at
length, and drew a long breath of satisfaction as he found himself
once more in the possession of his liberty.

"I'm a free man once more," he said. "What next?"

He would have been glad to return to the miser's house, and possessed
himself of some of his gold, but the faint gray of dawn was already
perceptible, and there was too much risk attending it. He felt that
this must be deferred to a more fitting occasion.

A few days later the tramp found himself in the streets of New York.

For the time he had given up the pursuit of Tony. Indeed, he had wholly
lost the clew. Moreover, prudence dictated his putting as great a
distance as possible between himself and the village where he had been
arrested.

The hundred miles intervening between New York and that place he had
got over in his usual way, begging a meal at one house, and a night's
lodging at another. He was never at a loss for a plausible story. At
one place where he was evidently looked upon with suspicion, he said:

"I ain't used to beggin'. I'm a poor, hard-workin' man, but I've heard
that my poor daughter is sick in New York, and she's in the hospital.
Poor girl! I'm afraid she'll suffer."

"What took her to New York?" asked the farmer whom he addressed.

"She went to take a place in a store," said Rudolph readily, "but she's
been taken sick, and she's in the hospital. Poor girl! I'm afraid
she'll suffer."

"I'm sorry for you," said the farmer's wife, sympathizingly. "Ephraim,
can't we help along this poor man?"

"If we can believe him. There's many impostors about."

"I hope you don't take me for one," said Rudolph, meekly. "Poor Jane;
what would she think if she knew how poor father was so misunderstood."

"Poor man! I believe you," said the farmer's wife. "You shall sleep in
Jonathan's bed. He's away now."

So Rudolph was provided with two abundant meals and a comfortable bed.
The farmer's wife never doubted his story, though she could not help
feeling that his looks were not prepossessing. But, was her charitable
thought, the poor man can't help his looks.

Of course Rudolph had been in New York often, and his familiar haunts.
As a general thing, however, he shunned the city, for he was already
known to the police, and he felt that watchful eyes would be upon him
as soon as it was known that he was back again.

On the second day he strolled into a low drinking place in the lower
part of the city.

A man in shirt sleeves, and with unhealthy complexion, was mixing
drinks behind the bar.

"Hallo, Rudolph! Back again?" was his salutation.

"Yes," said the tramp, throwing himself down in a seat.

"What's the news with you? Been prospering?"

"No."

"Where have you been?"

"Tramping round the country."

"Where's the boy you used to have with you?"

"Run away; curse him!" returned the tramp with a fierce scowl.

"Got tired of your company, eh?"

"He wants to be honest and respectable," answered Rudolph, with a sneer.

"And he thought he could learn better under another teacher, did he?"
said the bartender, with a laugh.

"Yes, I suppose so. I'd like to wring his neck," muttered the tramp.

"You're no friend to the honest and respectable, then?"

"No, I'm not."

"Then, there's no love lost, for they don't seem to fancy you. What'll
you have to drink?"

"I've got no money."

"I'll trust. You'll have some some time?"

"Give me some whisky, then," said the tramp.

The whisky was placed in his hands. He gulped it down, and breathed a
sigh of satisfaction.

Then resuming his seat, he took up a morning paper. At first he read it
listlessly, but soon his face assumed a look of eager interest.

This was the paragraph that arrested his attention:

"Should this meet the eye of Rudolph Rugg, who left England in the
fall of 1857, he is requested to communicate with Jacob Morris,
attorney-at-law, Room 11, No. --, Nassau street."

Rudolph rose hurriedly.

"Going?" asked the bartender.

"Yes; I'll be back again soon."




CHAPTER XVII.

THE LADY AT THE ST. NICHOLAS.


When Rudolph reached the sidewalk he stopped a moment to reflect on the
probable meaning of the advertisement.

"Perhaps it is a trap," he thought. "Perhaps, after so many years, they
want to punish me. Shall I go?"

His hesitation was only temporary.

"There's nothing to be afraid of," he concluded. "Very likely I shall
hear something to my advantage. I will go."

Ten minutes' walk brought him to Nassau street. He ascended two flights
of stairs, opened the door of No. --, and found himself in a lawyer's
office. A tall man of forty was seated at a desk, with some papers and
books lying before him.

"Well," he said inquiringly, "what can I do for you, sir?"

The address was not very cordial, for Rudolph did not have the look of
one likely to be a profitable client.

"Are you Mr. Jacob Morris, attorney-at-law?" asked the tramp.

"That is my name."

"I am Rudolph Rugg."

"Rudolph Rugg!" exclaimed the lawyer, briskly, jumping from his chair,
"you don't say so. I am very glad to see you. Take a chair, please."

Reassured by this reception, Rudolph took the seat indicated.

"So you saw my advertisement?" said the lawyer, brushing away the
papers with which he had been occupied.

"Yes, sir. I only saw it this morning."

"It has been inserted for the last two weeks, daily. How happens it
that you did not see it sooner?"

"I have been away from the city. I have been traveling. It was only an
accident that I happened to see it to-day."

"A lucky accident, Mr. Rugg."

"I hope it is, sir, for I have been out of luck myself, and I've been
hoping something would turn up for me. What is the business, sir?"

"My business has been to find you. I can't say anything more."

"To find me?"

"Yes."

"What for?"

"For a client of mine--an English lady."

"A lady?" ejaculated the tramp, with unconcealed surprise.

"Yes."

"Who is it?"

"I suppose I am at liberty to tell. The lady is Mrs. Harvey Middleton,
of Middleton Hall, England."

A peculiar expression swept over Rudolph's face, but he only said:

"I have heard the name of Harvey Middleton. Is--is the lady in New
York?"

"Yes; she is staying at the St. Nicholas Hotel."

"And she wants to find me?"

"Yes, she authorized me to seek you out?"

"Well," said Rudolph, after a brief pause, "I'm found. What next?"

"I shall at once send a messenger to Mrs. Middleton, and await her
orders. You will stay here."

He went to the door and called "John," in a loud voice.

"Look here," said Rudolph, suspiciously, "just tell me one thing. There
ain't any trap is there?"

"Trap, my good friend? What can you possibly mean?"

"You ain't sending for the police?"

"To be sure not. Besides, why should a gentleman like you fear the
police?"

"Oh, that's all gammon. I do fear the police uncommon. But if you tell
me it's all on the square, I'll believe you."

"On my honor, then, it's all on the square, as you call it. No harm
whatever is designed you. Indeed, I have reason to think that you will
make considerable money out of it. Now, hark ye, my friend, a word in
confidence. We can do each other good."

"Can we?" asked the tramp, surveying the lawyer, in surprise.

"Yes, and I'll tell you how. This lady, Mrs. Middleton, appears to be
rich."

"She is rich."

"So much the better for us. I mean to give her the idea that I have
been at great trouble and expense in finding you."

"I see," said Rudolph, smiling. "You mean to charge it in the bill."

"Of course, I shall represent that I sent out messengers in search of
you, and you were found by one of them."

"Very good."

"So you need not say anything about the advertisement."

"All right, sir."

"Grant me a moment while I pencil a note to the lady."

       *       *       *       *       *       *       *

In a private parlor at the St. Nicholas sat a lady of middle age. She
had a haughty face, and stern, compressed lips. She was one to repel
rather than to attract. She had a note before her, which she threw down
with an exclamation of impatience.

"So he has heard nothing yet. For three weeks I have been wasting
my time at this hotel, depending on this lawyer, and he has done
absolutely nothing. And the issue is so important. I may have to employ
another person, and that will be a fresh bill of expense."

At this moment a light knock was heard at the door.

"Enter," said the lady.

"A note for Mrs. Middleton," announced a servant.

She took the missive and hastily opened it. It read thus:


     "MY DEAR MADAM--At last, after unwearied exertions, I
     have succeeded. The man, Rudolph Rugg, has been found by one of my
     messengers, and is at this moment in my office, ready to obey your
     summons. Shall I send him to you?

     "Yours, respectfully,
     "JACOB MORRIS."

     "P. S.--I assured you at the outset that if he were living I would
     find him. I am sure you will appreciate my exertions in your
     behalf."


"That means a larger bill," thought the lady. "However, I am willing to
pay handsomely. The man is found, and he can, doubtless, produce the
boy."

"Wait!" she said, in an imperious tone, to the servant, who was about
to withdraw. "There is an answer."

She hastily penciled the following note:

"I am very glad you have found Rudolph Rugg. I wish to speak to him at
once. Send him here directly."

"Short and not sweet!" commented the lawyer, when it was placed in his
hands. "She says nothing about the compensation."

"Is it about me?" asked the tramp, watching the lawyer's face eagerly.

"Yes; it is from Mrs. Middleton. She wants you to come to the hotel at
once. But, my friend, if you will excuse the suggestion, I would advise
you, since you are about to call upon a lady, to put on a better suit
of clothes."

The tramp scowled at the hint.

"How am I to do it," he demanded roughly, "when these are all the
clothes I have?"

The lawyer whistled.

"A pretty looking figure to call upon a lady at a fashionable hotel!"
he thought.

"You must go as you are," he said. "Wait a minute."

He took a blank card and wrote upon it the name:


     RUDOLPH RUGG.


"When you reach the hotel," he said, "inquire for Mrs. Middleton, and
send that card up to her."

"Very well, sir."

The tramp started for the hotel, his mind busily occupied.

"What does she want with me? She wasn't Mrs. Middleton when I knew her;
she was Miss Vincent, the governess. I suppose she's a great lady now.
So she got Mr. Harvey to marry her. That ain't surprisin'. She looked
like a schemer even then, and I was a fool not to see what she was at.
Likely she was up to the other thing. Well, I shall soon know."




CHAPTER XVIII.

TWO CONSPIRATORS.


"You want to see Mrs. Middleton?" demanded the hotel clerk, surveying
Mr. Rugg's exterior with a glance which betokened suspicion.

"Yes," said the tramp.

"I don't think she'll see one of your sort."

"That's where you're mistaken, young feller," said Rudolph, loftily.
"She wants to see me uncommon."

"You're a strange visitor for a lady."

"What if I am? There's my card. Just you send it up, and see if she
won't see me."

The clerk took the card, and looked at it doubtfully. Then summoning an
attendant, he said:

"Take this up to 57."

Presently the servant returned.

"The gentleman is to go up," he said.

Rudolph looked at the clerk triumphantly.

"What did I tell you?" he said.

"Show the _gentleman_ up," said the clerk, purposely emphasizing the
word.

As Rudolph entered the handsome parlor occupied by Mrs. Middleton, she
said:

"Take a seat, sir." Then to the attendant: "You may go. You are Rudolph
Rugg?" she commenced when they were alone.

"Yes, ma'am," he answered; "and you are Miss Vincent, the governess. I
haven't forgotten you."

"I am Mrs. Harvey Middleton," she said haughtily.

"Excuse me, ma'am. I hadn't heard as you had changed your condition.
You was the governess when I knowed you."

"You never knew me," she said, in the same haughty tone.

"Well, I knowed Mr. Harvey, at any rate."

"That is not to the purpose. Do you know why I have sought you out?"

"I couldn't guess, ma'am," said Rudolph, cunningly.

He could guess, but he wanted to force her to speak out.

"Where is the boy? Is he living?" she demanded, eagerly.

"What boy?" asked Rudolph, vacantly.

"You know very well. Robert Middleton, my husband's cousin, whom you
stole away when he was scarcely more than an infant."

"Can you prove what you say, Miss Vincent--I mean Mrs. Middleton?"

"Yes. It is idle to beat about the bush. My husband has told me all."

"Then he has told you that he hired me to carry the boy off, in order
that he might inherit the estate?"

The tramp looked searchingly in the lady's face as he said this.

"Yes, he told me that," she answered, composedly.

"Well, I didn't think he'd own up to that," said the tramp, in surprise.

"My husband and I had no secrets," said the lady, coldly.

"What does he want of the boy now?" asked Rudolph.

"It is I that want to find the boy."

"Without his knowledge?"

"If you refer to my husband, he is dead."

"Dead! You don't say so?"

"He died six months ago."

"Well, I didn't expect that. Who has got the estate?"

"I have."

The tramp whistled, and surveyed the lady with genuine admiration. Here
was a poor governess, who had succeeded in life with a vengeance. When
he knew her she was not worth fifty pounds in the world. Now she was a
mistress of a fine English estate, with a rental of two thousand pounds.

"Wasn't there no heirs?" he asked.

"Only this boy."

"And if this boy was alive would the estate be his?"

The lady paused, meanwhile fixing her eyes steadily upon the man before
her. Then, as if rapidly making up her mind, she approached him, and
placed her jeweled hand on his arm.

"Rudolph Rugg," she said, "do you want to be comfortable for life?"

"Yes, ma'am, that's exactly what I do want. I've been wanting it ever
since I was old enough to know the power of money, but it has never
come to me."

"It will come to you now if you say the word," she said.

"I'll say it quick enough. Tell me what you want."

"You talk like a sensible man. But first tell me, is the boy living?"

"He is alive and well."

She frowned slightly, as if the intelligence didn't please her.

"Do you know where he is?"

"Yes," answered Rudolph.

It was false, of course, but he thought it was for his interest to
answer in the affirmative.

"When did you see him last?"

"Last week."

"Very well, you know where he is. That is important. Now, in order that
you may understand what service I want of you, I must tell you a little
of my circumstances. I told you that my husband left me the estate."

"Yes, ma'am."

"But only in trust."

"For the boy?" asked the tramp, in excitement.

"Precisely."

"Well, I'll be blowed."

"What excites you, Mr. Rugg?"

"To think that Tony, the tramp, should be the owner of a splendid
estate in old Hingland, and not know anything about it."

"I am the owner," said the lady, frowning.

"But you're only takin' care of it for him."

"I don't mean that he shall ever know it."

Rudolph whistled.

"I wish you would forbear whistling in the presence of a lady. It is
unmannerly," said Mrs. Middleton, annoyed.

"I ain't much used to associating with ladies," said the tramp.

"Bear it in mind, then," she said, sharply. "Now to business."

"Yes, ma'am, to business."

"My husband secured the inheritance, as you are aware, through the
disappearance of his young cousin. And mighty well he managed it.

"But after he fell into ill health, and was given over by the doctors,
he became a prey to superstitious fears, the result of his weakness,
and at times experienced great regret for the hand he had in the
abduction of the boy."

"You surprise me, ma'am. He wasn't that sort when I knew him."

"No; he was then in perfect health, and was bold and resolute. Ill
health and the approach of death made him superstitious."

"You ain't that way, ma'am, I take it," said Rudolph, with a leer.

"No; I have a stronger will and greater resolution, I hope."

Her face did not belie her words. There was a cold look in her
light-gray eyes, and a firmness in her closely-pressed lips, which made
it clear that she was not likely to be affected by ordinary weakness.
She was intensely selfish, and thoroughly unscrupulous as to the means
which she employed to carry out her selfish ends.

"So you're afraid the boy'll turn up, ma'am?" asked Rudolph.

"Precisely."

"Then why do you look for him?"

"I want to guard against his ever turning up. I hoped you would be able
to tell me he was dead."

"He don't know about the property."

"But he might have learned, or you might. My husband, with the idea of
reparation, left the property to me, in trust, but if it should ever
be fully ascertained that the boy had died, then it was to be mine
absolutely. There must be clear proof."

"I begin to see what you're driving at, ma'am."

"You say the boy is alive?"

"Yes, ma'am."

"And well?"

"Stout and hearty, ma'am. He's been under my care ever since he was a
young 'un, ma'am, and I've treated him like he was my own."

"Indeed!"

"Yes, ma'am. I'm poor, but I've always shared my crust with him, givin'
him the biggest half."

"Very kind, I'm sure," said the lady, sarcastically. "I suppose you're
very fond of him."

"Of course I am," said Rudolph, "but," he added, after a slight pause,
"there's one thing I like better."

"What is that?"

"Money."

"Good!" said the lady, her face lighting up with satisfaction. "I see
we understand one another."

"That's so, ma'am. You needn't be afraid to say anything to me.
Business is business."

"Draw your chair near mine, Mr. Rugg," said Mrs. Middleton, affably.

The tramp did so. He foresaw what was coming, but did not flinch.




CHAPTER XIX.

THE WICKED COMPACT.


"It appears to me, Mr. Rugg, that you have prospered," said the lady.

"That's where you're right, ma'am, and you couldn't be righter."

"I'm as poor as I can be."

"So am I," said the tramp, adding, with a cunning look, "but times will
be better now."

"Why will they be better?" asked Mrs. Middleton, suspiciously.

"Tony won't see me want when he comes into ten thousand a year."

"Who said he was coming into it?" demanded the lady, coldly.

"You said he was the heir."

"He hasn't got the estate, and I don't mean he shall have it."

"How will you prevent that ma'am?"

Mrs. Middleton again put her hand on the man's tattered coat sleeve,
and in a voice scarcely above a whisper, said:

"Mr. Rugg, you must prevent it."

"How can I prevent it?" asked the tramp, with an assumption of
innocence.

"I take it, you are not a religious man?"

"Not much," answered the tramp, with a short laugh.

"You are not afraid--to do wrong?"

"Yes, I am, ma'am; but if I was paid for it I might not mind."

"You shall be paid, and paid well."

"What do you want me to do?"

Mrs. Middleton said, with slow significance:

"This boy is in my way. Don't you think he might manage to get sick and
die?"

"Perhaps he might," said Rudolph, who did not appear to be shocked at
the suggestion.

"Couldn't you manage it?" she asked, her eyes fixed upon the tramp.

"I might," he answered, shrewdly, "if it was going to do me any good."

"Then the only question is as to pay," she continued.

"That's about it ma'am. It's a big risk, you know. I might get caught,
and then money wouldn't do me much good."

"Nothing venture, nothing have. You don't want to be a pauper all your
life?"

"No, I don't," answered the tramp with energy. "I'm tired of tramping
round the country, sleeping in barns and under hay-stacks, and picking
up meals where I can. I've had enough of it."

"Do as I wish, and you need never suffer such privations again," said
the tempter.

"How much will you give me?" asked Rudolph, in a business-like manner.

"Five hundred dollars down and five hundred dollars income as long as
you live."

This was good fortune of which Rudolph had never dreamed, but he
understood how to make the best of the situation.

"It is not enough," he said, shaking his head.

"Not enough!" exclaimed Mrs. Middleton, with a look of displeasure.
"Why, it seems to me very liberal. You can live comfortably all your
life just for doing one thing."

"A thing which may bring me to the gallows. It's all very well to talk,
but I can't risk my neck for that."

The lady was not surprised. She had expected that she would be
compelled to drive a bargain, and and she had named a sum less than she
was willing to pay.

"You see," continued Rudolph, "it's going to be a great thing for
you. You'll be sure of a big estate and an income of two thousand
pounds--that's ten thousand dollars--a year, and it'll be me that gives
it to you."

"You overestimate your services, Mr. Rugg," she said, coldly. "If I
decline to proceed further the estate will be mine."

"Not if I bring on the boy, and say he's the real heir."

"I shall deny it," said the lady, composedly, "and challenge you to the
proof."

"You will?" queried the tramp, disconcerted.

"Of course I shall."

"Then I'll prove it," he continued, in tone of triumph.

"Who will believe you?" asked Mrs. Middleton, quietly.

"Why shouldn't they?"

"You are a tramp, and a discreditable person. Your appearance would be
against you. I suspect the boy is one of the same sort."

"No, he isn't. I don't like him overmuch, but he's a handsome chap,
looks the gentleman every inch, even if he is dressed a little shabby."

"I should charge you with conspiracy, Mr. Rugg. You'd find it uphill
work fighting me without influence and without money. To begin with,
how would you get over to England?"

As presented by Mrs. Middleton, certainly the chances did not look
flattering.

But an idea occurred to Rudolph, and he instantly expressed it:

"Then, if there ain't no danger from me or the boy, why do you offer me
anything to put him out of the way?"

Mrs. Middleton hesitated.

"I may as well tell you," she said, after a moment's pause. "I take it
for granted you will keep the matter secret."

"Of course I will."

"Then it is this: I married Mr. Harvey Middleton to secure a home and a
position. I didn't love him."

"Quite right, ma'am."

"I was a poor governess. It was a great thing for me to marry Mr.
Middleton."

"I should think so."

"I made him a good wife. He had no reason to complain of me, and when
he died he left me in charge of the estate."

"For the boy?"

"Yes, for the boy, and this has given me trouble."

"He hasn't never troubled you."

"Not yet, and but for one thing I would not have come to America in
search of him."

"What is that?"

"That is the secret I am going to tell you. I want to marry again."

The tramp whistled.

Mrs. Middleton frowned, but went on:

"This time I love the man I want to marry. He is from an excellent
family, but he is a younger son, and has little or nothing himself. If
the estate were mine absolutely, there would be no opposition on the
part of his family to his marrying me to-morrow, but with the knowledge
that the boy may turn up at any time, nothing will be done."

"I see," said the tramp, nodding.

"But for this, I never would have stirred in the matter at all. I did
not think it probable that the boy would ever hear of his inheritance."

"He don't even know who he is," said Rudolph.

"You never told him, then?" said the lady in a tone of satisfaction.

"No. What was the good?"

"There was no good, and you did wisely. Now I have told you how matters
stand, and I renew the offer which I made you a few minutes since."

"It is too little," said the tramp, shaking his head.

"Tell me what you expect. Mind, I don't say that I will meet your views
if they are extravagant. Still I might agree to pay you a little more."

"I want just double what you offered me, ma'am."

"Why, that's extortion."

"That's as you choose to consider it, ma'am. It'll leave you money
enough. It's one-tenth."

"Suppose I refuse."

"Then I'll go and see a lawyer, and he'll tell me what I had better do."

"Even if you succeeded, and got the boy in possession, do you think he
would give you any more than I offered?"

This was a consideration which had not occurred to the tramp. He had
only thought of punishing the lady for not acceding to his terms. He
asked himself, moreover, did he really wish Tony to come into such a
piece of good fortune, and that after the boy had been instrumental in
having him arrested. No, anything but that! He decided to work for Mrs.
Middleton, and make the best terms he could.

"I'll tell you what I'll do ma'am," he said. "I'll say eight hundred
dollars down, and the same every year."

To this sum Mrs. Middleton finally agreed.

"You say you know where the boy is?" she asked.

"Yes, ma'am."

"Then there need be no delay."

"Only a little. But I shall want some money. I haven't a penny."

Mrs. Middleton took out her purse.

"Here are a hundred dollars," she said. "The rest shall be paid you
when you have earned it."

Rudolph rose to go, and as he went down stairs thoughtfully, he said to
himself:

"That woman's a case if ever there was one. How coolly she hires me to
kill the boy. I don't half like the job. It's too risky. But there's
money in it, and I can't refuse. The first thing is to find him!"




CHAPTER XX.

THE FIGHTING QUAKER.


The tramp decided that the best way to find Tony would be to return
to that part of the country where he had lost him, and make inquiries
for a boy of his description. He could do it more comfortably now,
being provided with funds, thanks to Mrs. Middleton. He was now able to
command fair accommodations, and this was satisfactory.

But there was another difficulty which, at times, gave him uneasiness.
He had escaped from the custody of the law, and was liable to be
arrested. This would have disconcerted him, and interfered seriously
with the purpose he had in view.

"I must disguise myself," thought Rudolph. "It won't do to run any
risk. When I was a tramp I didn't care, but now I've got something to
live for."

It was not the first time in his varied experience that he had felt
the need of a disguise, and he knew just where to go to find one. In
the lower part of the city there was a shop well provided with such
articles as he required. He lost no time in seeking it out.

"What can I do for you, Mr. Rugg?" asked the old man who kept the
establishment.

"I want a disguise."

"Then you've come to the right shop. What will you be--a sailor, a
Quaker, a--"

"Hold, there," said Rudolph. "You've named the very thing."

"What?"

"A Quaker. Can you make me a good broad-brim?"

"Yea, verily," answered the old man, laughing, "I can suit thee to a T."

"Do so, then."

From out a pile of costumes of various styles and fashions the old man
drew a suit of drab and a broad-brimmed hat.

"How will that do?" he asked.

"Capital!" answered Rudolph, with satisfaction, "that is, if it will
fit."

"I'll answer for that. It's made for a man of your size. Will you try
it on?"

"First tell me the price."

"Thirty dollars."

"Thirty dollars!" exclaimed the tramp, aghast. "Do you think I am made
of money?"

"Look at the quality, my good friend. Look at the cloth."

"Why, I may not want the things for more than a week."

"Then, I'll tell you what I'll do. If you only use them a week, you
shall bring them back, and I will pay you back twenty-five dollars;
that is," added the old man cautiously, "if you don't hurt 'em too
much."

"That's better," said Rudolph. "I'll try them on."

He went into an inner room, provided for the purpose, and soon came out
entirely transformed. In addition to the drab suit, a gray wig had been
supplied, which gave him the appearance of a highly respectable old
Quaker.

The old man laughed heartily, for he had a merry vein.

"How dost thee like it?" he asked.

"Capital," said Rudolph; "would you know me?"

"I wouldn't dream it was you. But, Mr. Rugg, there's one thing you
mustn't forget."

"What's that?"

"To use the Quaker lingo. Just now you said, 'Would you know me?' That
isn't right."

"What should I say?"

"Would thee know me?"

"All right. I'll get it after a while. There's your money."

"There you are again. You must say thy money."

"I see you know all about it. You've been a Quaker yourself, haven't
you?"

"Not I; but I was brought up in Philadelphia, and I have seen plenty of
the old fellows. That's right. Now, don't forget how to talk. Where are
you going?"

"Into the country on a little expedition," said Rudolph.

"When will you be back?"

"In a week, if all goes well."

"Well, good luck to you."

"I wish thee good luck, too," said the tramp.

"Ha, ha! You've got it; you'll do."

The tramp emerged into the street, a very fair representative of a
sedate Quaker. At first he forgot his gray hair, and walked with
a briskness that was hardly in character with his years. He soon
attracted the attention of some street boys, who, not suspecting his
genuineness, thought him fair game.

"How are you, old Broadbrim?" said one.

Rudolph didn't resent this. He felt rather pleased at this compliment
to his get up.

"You'd make a good scarecrow, old buffer," said another.

Still the tramp kept his temper.

A third boy picked up a half-eaten apple and fired it at him.

This was too much for the newly-converted disciple of William Penn.

"Just let me catch you, you little rascal," he exclaimed, "and I'll
give you the worst licking you ever had."

The boys stared open mouthed at such language from the sedate old
gentlemen.

"He's a fighting Quaker," said the first one, "keep out of his way."

"If thee don't, thee'll catch it," said Rudolph, fortunately
remembering how he must talk.

He had thought of pursuing the disturbers of his peace, but motives of
prudence prevented him.




CHAPTER XXI.

RUDOLPH HEARS OF TONY.


Four days afterward Rudolph arrived in the town where Tony was
employed. He had not been drawn thither by any clew, but by pure
accident.

He put up for the night at the hotel where our hero had found work. He
enrolled himself on the register as "Obadiah Latham, Philadelphia."

This, he thought, would answer very well for a Quaker name, much
better, certainly, than Rudolph Rugg, which on other accounts also was
objectionable.

"Can thee give me a room, friend?" he inquired at the desk.

"Certainly, sir," was the polite reply. "Here, Henry, show this old
gentleman up to No. 6. No. 6 is one of our best rooms, Mr. Latham."

"I thank thee," said the tramp, who, by this time, was quite accustomed
to the peculiar phraseology of the Friends.

"The Quakers are always polite," said the bookkeeper. "They are good
pay, too, and never give any trouble. I wish we had more of them stop
here."

"If all your customers were of that description, your bar wouldn't pay
very well."

"That is true."

But later in the evening the speaker was obliged to change his opinion.

The Quaker came up to the bar, and asked:

"Will thee give me a glass of brandy?"

"Sir?" said the barkeeper, astounded, and hardly believing his ears.

"A glass of brandy!" repeated Rudolph, irritably. "Where is thy ears?"

"I beg pardon, sir, but I was surprised. I did not know that gentlemen
of your faith ever drank liquor."

"Thee is right," said the tramp, recollecting himself. "It is only for
my health. Thee may make it strong, so that I may feel better soon."

Rudolph drained the glass, and then after a little hesitation, he said:

"I feel better. Will thee mix me another glass, and a little stronger?"

A stronger glass was given him, and he poured it down rapidly.

The barkeeper looked at him shrewdly.

"Quaker as he is, he is evidently used to brandy," he said to himself.
"If he wasn't those two glasses would have upset him."

But Rudolph did not appear to be upset, or, indeed, to be in the least
affected.

He put his broad-brimmed hat more firmly on his head, and went outside.
He determined to take a walk about the village. This was his usual
custom on arriving in a new place. On such occasions he kept his eyes
open, and looked about, in the hope that he might somewhere see the
object of his search. He little suspected that Tony was at that very
moment in the stable-yard in the rear of the hotel.

He walked on for perhaps a quarter of a mile, and then leaned against a
fence to rest. As he stood here, two boys passed him slowly, conversing
as they walked.

"I was surprised, Sam, at Tony Rugg's whipping you," said the first.

"He couldn't do it again," said Sam, sullenly.

Rudolph's attention was at once drawn.

Tony Rugg! Why, there could be but one Tony Rugg.

He advanced toward the boys.

"Boys," he asked, "did thee mention the name of Tony Rugg?"

"Yes, sir."

"Does thee know such a boy?"

"Yes, sir. He is working at the hotel. He got my place away from me,"
said Sam. "Do you know him?"

"I once knew such a boy. But no! his name was Charles."

"Perhaps he's a relation."

"Perhaps thee are right."

This the tramp said cunningly, not wishing Tony to hear that he had
been inquiring after him.




CHAPTER XXII.

RUDOLPH FINDS TONY.


Rudolph was very much elated at what he had heard. His object then was
already attained, and the boy was found.

"Well, good luck has come to me at last," he said to himself. "The
young scoundrel is found, and now I must consider how to get him into
my hands once more."

The Quaker, to designate him according to his present appearance, at
once made his way back to the hotel. He wanted to see Tony and verify
the information he had obtained from the boys, though he saw no reason
to doubt it.

"There can't be two Tony Ruggs in the world," he said to himself. "I am
sure this is the boy."

On reaching the hotel he sauntered out into the stable-yard in the rear
of the house. His eyes lighted with pleasure, for he at once caught
sight of Tony, standing beside James, the hostler.

"There comes old Broadbrim," said James in a low voice. "The barkeeper
told me he took two stiff horns of brandy. He's a queer sort of Quaker
in my opinion."

Tony gave a curious glance at the disguised tramp, but entertained no
suspicion of his not being what he represented. The white hair and
costume made it difficult to doubt.

"I never saw a Quaker before," he said.

"Didn't you?"

Meantime Rudolph came nearer. His disguise had been so successful that
he felt perfectly safe from discovery.

"Does thee keep many horses?" he asked.

"Yes, sir; we have twelve."

"That is a large number. Yea, verily, it is," said the tramp.

"Well, it is, but we need them all. There's a good deal of carting to
do for the hotel, besides Mr. Porter keeps a livery stable. Was you
ever this way before?" asked James, thinking he might as well ask a few
questions also.

"Nay, verily."

"Where might you be from?"

"From Philadelphia."

"I've heard there's a good many Quakers out that way."

"Yea, verily, my friend, thee is right."

"Are you going away to-morrow morning?"

"Nay, friend, I think I shall tarry a day or two. Is that lad thy son?"

"Tony, he asks if you are my son," said James, laughing. "No, his name
is Tony Rugg, while mine is James Woodley."

"Anthony, was thee born in this town?" asked the tramp, boldly defying
detection.

"No, sir," answered Tony. "I only came here a few weeks ago."

"Yea, verily," was the only comment Rudolph made.

"I'd like to choke the boy. I can hardly keep my hands off him," he
said to himself. "But I'd better be going. He is looking at me closely.
He might suspect something."

"Good-night," he said, and the two responded civilly to the salutation.

"Well, Tony, what do you think of Broadbrim?" asked James.

"I don't know, there's something in his voice that sounds familiar to
me."

"Perhaps you may have met him somewhere before," suggested the hostler.

"No, I am sure I have not. I never met any Quaker before."

"Well, there's strange likenesses sometimes. Did I ever tell you my
adventure out in Maine?"

"No, what was it?"

"I went down East to see a sister of mine that is married down near
Augusta. When, as I was goin' through Portland, a woman came up and
made a great ado about my deserting her. She took me for her husband,
and came near having me arrested for desertion. You see I and her
husband was as like as two peas, that's what some of her neighbors
said."

"How did you get off?"

"Luckily I had documents in my pocket showing who I was. Besides, my
brother-in-law happened to be in the city, and he identified me."

Rudolph sat in the public room of the hotel for a time, and then
he went up to his room, partly to be out of the way of possible
recognition, partly to think how he could manage to get Tony into
his clutches once more, without betraying himself, or exciting any
interference.

He had a back room, the window of which looked out upon the
stable-yard. He seated himself at this window, and in this position
could easily see and hear all that passed there.

Tony and the hostler were lounging about, the latter smoking a clay
pipe, their work being done for the day.

"Tony," said the hostler, "I almost forgot to tell you, you're to go to
Thornton to-morrow."

"What for?"

"There's a top-buggy Mr. Porter has sold to a man there. You're to take
it over, and lead the horse back."

"How far is it?"

"About five miles."

"All right. I'd just as leave go as stay here. Can I find the road
easily?"

"There's no trouble about that. It's straight all the way. Part of it
runs through the woods--about a mile, I should say."

"Did Mr. Porter say when he wanted me to start?"

"About nine o'clock; by that time you'll be through your chores."

"Well, I'm willing."

Rudolph heard this conversation with no little pleasure.

"It's the very chance I was waiting for," he said to himself. "I'll lie
in wait for him as he comes back. I can easily hide in the woods."




CHAPTER XXIII.

THE NEGLECTED WELL.


Rudolph took care to breakfast in good season the next morning. He felt
that this day was to make his fortune. The deed which would entitle him
to a life support was to be perpetrated on that day. He shuddered a
little when he reflected that in order to compass this a life must be
sacrificed, and that the life of the boy who had been for years under
his guardianship, who had slept at his side, and borne with him the
perils and privations of his adventurous career. He was a reckless man,
but he had never before shed blood, or at any rate taken the life of a
human being. He would have been less than human if the near approach of
such a crime had not made him nervous and uncomfortable.

But against this feeling he fought strenuously.

"What's the odds?" he said to himself. "The boy's got to die some time
or other, and his dying now will make me comfortable for life. No
more hungry tramps for me. I'll settle down and be respectable. Eight
hundred dollars a year will relieve me from all care, and I shall only
need to enjoy myself after this."

Rudolph must have had strange notions of respectability to think it
could be obtained by crime; but in fact his idea was that a man who
could live on his own means was from that very power respectable, and
there are plenty of persons of a higher social grade who share in this
delusion.

At a few minutes after nine Tony set out on his journey. It never
occurred to him that the old Quaker in suit of sober drab, who sat on
the piazza and saw him depart, was a man who cherished sinister designs
upon him. In fact, he had forgotten all about him, and was intent upon
his journey alone. Most boys like to drive, and our friend Tony was no
exception to this general rule. He thought it much better than working
about the stable-yard.

"Take care of yourself, Tony," said James, the hostler, in a friendly
tone.

"Oh, yes, I'll do that," said Tony, little dreaming how necessary the
admonition was likely to prove.

"I may as well be starting too," thought Rudolph, and some ten minutes
afterward he started at a walk along the road which led to Thornton.

"I'll keep on as far as the woods," he thought, "and then I'll form
my plans. The boy must not escape me, for I may never have as good a
chance to dispose of him again."

About two miles on began the woods to which reference has already been
made. The tramp selected this as probably the best part of the road to
accomplish his criminal design.

They extended for nearly a mile on either side of the road, and this
was likely to facilitate his purpose.

"I'll explore a little," thought Rudolph. "I shall have plenty of time
before the boy comes back."

Some forty rods from the road on the right hand side, the tramp
discovered a ruined hut, which had once belonged to a recluse who had
for years lived apart from his kind. This had now fallen into decay,
for the former occupant had been for some time dead, and no one had
been tempted to succeed him.

The general appearance of the building satisfied Rudolph that it was
deserted. Impelled partly by curiosity, he explored the neighborhood of
the house.

A rod to the east there was a well, open to the view, the curb having
decayed, and being in a ruined condition, Rudolph looked down into it,
and judged that it might be about twenty feet deep.

A diabolical suggestion came to him. If he could only lure Tony to this
well and dispose of him forever.

"I'll do it," he muttered to himself, and started to return to the
road, where he hoped to intercept our hero.

Poor Tony! he little dreamed of the danger that menaced him.




CHAPTER XXIV.

THE DEED IS DONE.


Tony drove rapidly to Thornton and sought the purchaser of the buggy.
There was a delay of half an hour in finding him, but at last his
business was done, and he set out for home.

It was not quite so amusing leading the horse as sitting in a buggy and
driving him. But all our pleasures have to be paid for, and Tony was
ready to pay the price of this one. After all, he reflected, it was
quite as amusing as working about the stable yard, especially after it
occurred to him to mount the animal and thus spare himself fatigue.

Everything went smoothly till he entered the woody part of the road.

"Now I shall be home soon," he said to himself. "But, hallo! who's
that?" as a figure stepped out from the side of the road. "Oh, it's the
Quaker. I wonder what brought him here?"

"Friend, is thee in a hurry?" asked the impostor.

"I suppose I ought to get back as soon as I can," said Tony. "Why,
what's up?"

"Thee is the boy from the hotel, is thee not?" asked Rudolph.

"Yes. You're the Quaker gentleman that is stopping there?"

"Yes."

"Well, what do you want of me?"

"There's a man in the woods that has fallen down a well, and I fear he
is badly hurt."

"A man fallen down a well!" exclaimed Tony.

"Yes."

"Where is the well?"

"Back in the woods."

"How did you find him?"

"I was walking for amusement when I heard groans, and looking down I
could see the poor man."

Tony never thought of doubting this statement, and said, in a tone of
genuine sympathy: "Poor fellow!"

"Will thee go with me and help get him out?" asked the Quaker.

"Yes," said Tony, readily, "I'll do it. Never mind if I am a little
late. Where shall I put the horse?"

"Lead him into the woods and tie him to a tree."

"All right. I guess that'll be the best way."

The horse was disposed of as had been suggested, and the two set forth
on what Tony supposed to be their charitable errand.

"I don't see what made you go into the woods?" said our hero, a little
puzzled.

"I was brought up in the woods, my young friend. It reminds me of the
time when I was a boy like thee."

"Oh, that's it. Well, it was lucky for the man, that is if we can get
him out. Did you speak to him?"

"Yes, verily."

"And did he answer?"

"He groaned. I think he was insensible. I saw that I should need help,
and I came to the road again. Luckily thee came by."

"Had you been waiting long?"

"Only five minutes," answered Rudolph.

In reality he had been compelled to wait near an hour, much to his
disgust. In fact, he had been led to fear that there might be some
other road by which one could return from Thornton, and that Tony had
taken it. Should this be the case, his elaborate trap would be useless.

They had come quite near the ruined dwelling, and already the curb of
the well was visible.

"Is that the well?" asked Tony.

"Yes," answered the Quaker.

"Let us hurry, then," said Tony.

But the time had come when Tony was to have revealed to him the real
character of his companion. A branch, which hung unusually low, knocked
off the hat and wig of the pseudo Quaker, and Tony was petrified with
dismay when he saw revealed the black, cropped head and sinister face
of Rudolph, the tramp.

"Rudolph!" he exclaimed, stopping short in his amazement.

"Yes," said the tramp, avowing himself, now that he saw disguise was
useless; "it's Rudolph. At last I have you, you young scamp!" and he
seized the boy's arm as in the grip of a vise.

Tony tried to shake off the grip, but what could a boy do against an
athletic man.

"It's no use," said the tramp, between his teeth, "I've got you, and I
don't mean to let you go."

"What do you mean to do, Rudolph?" asked Tony, uneasily.

"What do I mean to do? I mean to make you repent of what you've done to
me, you young whelp."

"What have I done?"

"What haven't you done? You've betrayed me, and sold me to my enemies.
That's what you've done."

"I've only done what I was obliged to do. I don't want to do you any
more harm. Let me go, and I won't meddle with you any more, nor say a
word about you at the hotel."

"Really," said Rudolph, with a disagreeable sneer, "I feel very much
obliged to you. You are very kind, upon my soul. So you won't tell them
at the hotel that the Quaker gentleman is only a tramp after all."

"No, I will say nothing about you."

"I don't think you are to be trusted, boy."

"Did you ever know me to tell a lie, Rudolph?" asked Tony, proudly. "I
don't pretend to be a model boy, but there's one thing I won't do, and
that is lie."

"I think I had better make sure that you don't say anything about me,"
said the tramp, significantly.

"How?" asked Tony.

"I don't mean to let you go back to the hotel at all."

"But I must go back. I must drive the horse back."

"That's of no importance."

"Yes, it is," persisted Tony, anxiously. "They will think I have stolen
it."

"Let them think so."

"But I don't want them to think me a thief."

"I can't help it."

"What are you going to do with me? Where are we going?"

"Before I tell you that I will tell you something more. You have often
asked me who you were."

"You always told me I was your son."

"It was not true," said Rudolph, calmly. "You are not related to me."

"I felt sure of it."

"Oh, you did!" sneered the tramp. "You are glad that you are not my
son!"

"Who am I?"

"I will tell you this much, that you are the heir to a fortune."

"I the heir to a fortune!" exclaimed Tony, in natural excitement.

"Yes; and I could help you to secure it if I pleased."

Tony knew not what to say or to think. Was it possible that he--Tony,
the tramp--was a gentleman's son, and heir to a fortune? It was almost
incredible. Moreover, what was the object of Rudolph in imparting this
secret, and at this time, when he sought revenge upon him.

"Is this true?" he asked.

"Perfectly true."

"And you know my real name and family?"

"Yes, I do."

"Oh, Rudolph, tell me who I am," Tony said, imploringly. "Help me to
the fortune which you say I am entitled to, and I will take care that
you are rewarded."

Rudolph surveyed the boy, whom he still held in his firm grasp, and
watched his excitement with malicious satisfaction.

"There is one objection to my doing that, boy," he said.

"What is that?"

"I'll tell you," he hissed, as his grasp grew tighter, and his dark
face grew darker yet with passion, "_I hate you!_"

This he uttered with such intensity that Tony, brave as he was, was
startled and dismayed.

"Then why did you tell me?" he asked.

"That you might know what you are going to lose--that you might repent
betraying me," answered Rudolph, rapidly. "You ask me what I am going
to do with you? I am going to throw you down that well, and leave you
there--to die!"

Then commenced a struggle between the man and boy. Tony knew what he
had to expect, and he fought for dear life. Rudolph found that he had
undertaken no light task, but he, too, was desperate. He succeeded at
last in dragging Tony to the well-curb, and, raising him in his sinewy
arms, he let him fall.

Then, without waiting to look down, he hurried out of the wood with all
speed. He reached the hotel, settled his bill, and paid to have himself
carried over to the nearest railroad station.

Not until he was fairly seated in the cars, and was rushing through
the country at the rate of thirty miles an hour, did he pause to
congratulate himself.

"Now for an easy life!" he ejaculated. "My fortune is made! I shall
never have to work any more."




CHAPTER XXV.

"I HOLD YOU TO THE BOND."


On reaching New York, Rudolph made his way at once to the shop from
which he had obtained his Quaker dress.

"Has thee come back?" asked the old man, in a jocular tone.

"Yea, verily," answered Rudolph.

"How do you like being a Quaker?"

"I've had enough of it. I want you to take them back. You promised to
return me twenty-five dollars."

"Let me look at them," said the old man, cautiously.

"They've seen hard usage," he said. "Look at that rip, and that spot."

"Humbug!" answered Rudolph. "There's nothing but what you can set
straight in half an hour, and five dollars is handsome pay for that."

But the old man stood out for seven, and finally the tramp, though
grumbling much, was obliged to come to his terms.

"Where have you been?" asked the old man, whose curiosity was aroused
as to what prompted Rudolph to obtain the disguise.

"That's my business," said Rudolph, who had his reasons for secrecy, as
we know.

"I meant no offense--I only wondered if you left the city."

"Yes, I've been into New Jersey," answered the tramp, who thought it
politic to put the customer on the wrong scent. "You see I've got an
old uncle--a Quaker--living there. The old man's got plenty of money,
and I thought if I could only make him think me a good Quaker, I should
stand a good chance of being remembered in his will."

"I see--a capital idea. Did it work?"

"I can't tell yet. He gave me four dollars and his blessing for the
present," said Rudolph, carelessly.

"That's a lie every word of it," said the old man to himself, after
the tramp went out. "You must try to fix up a more probable story next
time, Mr. Rudolph. He's been up to some mischief, probably. However,
it's none of my business, I've made seven dollars out of him, and that
pays me well--yes, it pays me well."

When Rudolph left the costumer's, it occurred to him that the tramp's
dress which he had resumed had better be changed, partly because he
thought it probable that a journey lay before him. He sought out a
large ready-made clothing establishment on Fulton street, and with the
money which had been returned to him obtained a respectable-looking
suit, which quite improved his appearance. He regarded his reflection
in a long mirror with considerable satisfaction. He felt that he would
now be taken for a respectable citizen, and that in discarding his old
dress he had removed all vestiges of the tramp. In this, however, he
was not wholly right. His face and general expression he could not
change. A careful observer could read in them something of the life he
had lead. Still he was changed for the better, and it pleased him.

"Now," he reflected, "I had better go and see Mrs. Harvey Middleton. I
have done the work, and I shall claim the reward."

He hurried to the St. Nicholas, and, experienced now in the ways of
obtaining access to a guest, he wrote his name on a card and sent it up.

"The lady will see you," was the answer brought back by the servant.

"Of course she will," thought Rudolph. "She'll want to know whether
it's all settled, and she has no further cause for fear."

Mrs. Middleton looked up as he entered.

"Sit down, Mr. Rugg," she said, politely.

Her manner was cool and composed; but when the servant had left the
room, she rose from her chair, and in a tone which showed the anxiety
which she had till then repressed, she asked, abruptly: "Well, Mr.
Rugg, have you any news for me?"

"Yes, ma'am, I have," he answered, deliberately.

"What is it? Don't keep me in suspense," she said, impatiently.

"The job's done," said Rudolph briefly.

"You mean that the boy--"

"Accidentally fell down a well, and was killed," said the visitor,
finishing the sentence.

"Horrible!" murmured the lady.

"Wasn't it?" said Rudolph, with a grin. "He must have been very
careless."

Mrs. Middleton did not immediately speak. Though she was responsible
for this crime, having instigated it, she was really shocked when it
was brought home to her.

"You are sure he is dead?" she said, after a pause.

"When a chap pitches head-first down a well thirty feet deep, there
isn't much hope for him, is there?"

"No, I suppose not. Where did this accident happen?" asked the lady.

"That ain't important," answered Rudolph. "It's happened--that's all
you need to know. Tony won't never come after that estate of his."

"It would have done him little good. He was not fitted by education to
assume it."

"No; but he might have been educated. But that's all over now. It's
yours. Nobody can take it from you."

"True!" said Mrs. Middleton, and a look of pleasure succeeded the
momentary horror. "You will be ready to testify that the boy is dead?"

"There won't be any danger, will there? They won't ask too many
questions?"

"As to that, I think we had better decide what we will say. It won't be
necessary to say how the boy died."

"Won't it?"

"No. Indeed, it will be better to give a different account."

"Will that do just as well?"

"Yes. You can say, for instance, that he died of small-pox while under
your care in St. Louis, or any other place."

"And that I tended him to the last with the affection of a father,"
added Rudolph, grinning.

"To be sure. You must settle upon all the details of the story, so as
not to be caught in any discrepancies."

"What's that?" asked the tramp, rather mystified.

"Your story must hang together. It mustn't contradict itself."

"To be sure. How long are you going to stay in New York?"

"There is no further occasion for my staying here. I shall sail to
England in a week."

"Will it be all right about the money?" asked Rudolph, anxiously.

"Certainly."

"How am I to be sure of that?"

"The word of a lady, sir," said Mrs. Middleton, haughtily, "ought to be
sufficient for you."

"That's all very well, but suppose you should get tired of paying me
the money?"

"Then you could make it very disagreeable for me by telling all you
know about the boy. However, there will be no occasion for that. I
shall keep my promise. Will you be willing to sail for England next
week."

"Do you mean that I am to go with you?"

"I mean that you are to go. Your testimony must be given on the other
side, in order to make clear my title to the estate."

"I see, ma'am. If I'd known that I wouldn't have had no fears about the
money."

"You need have none, Mr. Rugg," said Mrs. Middleton, coldly. "The fact
is, we are necessary to each other. Each can promote the interests of
the other."

"That's so, ma'am. Let's shake hands on that," said Rudolph, advancing
with outstretched hand.

"No, thank you," said Mrs. Middleton, coldly. "You forget yourself,
sir. Do not forget that I am a lady, and that you are--"

"We are equal, ma'am in this matter," said Rudolph, offended. "You
needn't shrink from shaking hands with me."

"That is not in the agreement," said Mrs. Middleton, haughtily. "I
shall do what I have agreed, but except so far as it is necessary in
the way of business, I wish you to keep yourself away from me. We
belong to different grades in society."

"Why didn't you say that the other day, ma'am?" said Rudolph, frowning.

"Because I didn't suppose it to be necessary. You did not offer to
shake hands with me then. Besides, at that time you had not--"

"Pushed the boy down the well, if that's what you mean," said Rudolph,
bluntly.

"Hush! don't refer to that. I advise you this for your own sake."

"And for the sake of somebody else."

"Mr. Rugg, all this discussion is idle. It can do no good. For whatever
service you have rendered, you shall be well paid. That you understand.
But it is best that we should know as little of each other henceforth
as possible. It might excite suspicion, as you can understand."

"Perhaps you are right, ma'am," said Rudolph, slowly.

"Call here day after to-morrow, and I will let you know by what
steamer I take passage for England, that you may obtain a ticket. Good
afternoon."

Rudolph left the lady's presence not wholly pleased.

"Why wouldn't she shake my hand?" he muttered to himself. "She's as
deep in it as I am."




CHAPTER XXVI.

TONY'S ESCAPE.


We must now return to our young hero, who was certainly in a critical
position. Though strong of his age, the reader will hardly be surprised
that he should have been overpowered by a man like Rudolph.

When the false Quaker's hat and wig were taken off, though he was at
first surprised, he for the first time understood why the man's face
and voice had seemed familiar to him from the time they first met.

He struggled in vain against the fate in store for him. He felt that
with him it was to be a matter of life and death, and taken by surprise
though he was, he was on the alert to save his life if he could.

The well curb was partially destroyed, as we have said, but the rope
still hung from it. At the instant of his fall, Tony managed while in
transit to grasp the rope by one hand. He swung violently from one side
to the other, and slipped a few feet downward. This Rudolph did not
see, for as soon as he had hurled the boy into the well he hurried away.

Tony waited for the rope to become steady before attempting to ascend
hand over hand. Unfortunately for his purpose the rope was rotten, and
broke just above where he grasped it, precipitating him to the bottom
of the well. But he was already so far from the opening that his fall
was not over ten feet. Luckily also the water was not over two feet
in depth. Therefore, though he was jarred and startled by the sudden
descent, he was not injured.

"Well," thought Tony, "I'm as low as I can get--that's one comfort. Now
is there any chance of my getting out?"

He looked up, and it gave him a peculiar sensation to look up at the
blue sky from the place where he stood. He feared that Rudolph was
still at hand and would resist any efforts he might make to get out of
the well.

"If he don't interfere I'm bound to get out," he said to himself,
pluckily.

His feet were wet, of course, and this was far from comfortable.

He made a brief examination of the situation, and then decided upon his
plan. The well, like most in the country, was provided by a wall of
stones, piled one upon another. In parts it looked rather loose, and
Tony shuddered as he thought of the possibility of the walls falling,
and his being buried in the ruins.

"It would be all up with me, then," he thought, "I must get out of
this as soon as I can. If I can only climb up as far as the rope I can
escape."

This, in fact, seemed to be his only chance. Using the wall as a
ladder, he began cautiously to ascend. More than once he came near
falling a second time, but by greatest exertion he finally reached the
rope. He did not dare to trust to it entirely, but contrived to ascend
as before, clinging to the rope with his hands. He was in constant fear
that it would break a second time, but the strain upon it was not so
great, and finally, much to his delight, he reached the top.

He breathed a deep sigh of relief when he found himself once more on
_terra firma_. He looked about him cautiously, under the apprehension
that Rudolph might be near by, and ready to attack him again. But, as
we know, his fears were groundless.

"He made sure that I was disposed of," thought Tony. "What could have
induced him to attempt my life? Can it be true, as he said, that I am
heir to a fortune? Why couldn't he tell me? I would have paid him well
for the information when I got my money. Then he said he knew who I
was--I care more for that than the money."

But Tony could not dwell upon these thoughts. The claims of duty were
paramount. He must seek the horse, and go back to the hotel. He had
been detained already for nearly three-quarters of an hour, and they
would be wondering what had become of him.

He made his way as quickly as possible to where he had tied the horse.
But he looked for him in vain. He had been untied and led away--perhaps
stolen. Tony felt assured that the horse of himself could not leave the
spot.

"It must be Rudolph," he said to himself. "He has made off with the
horse. Now I am in trouble. What will Mr. Porter say to me?"

Tony was in error, as we know, in concluding that Rudolph had carried
away the horse. The tramp had no use for him. Besides, he knew that
such a proceeding would have exposed him to suspicion, which it was
very important for him to avoid.

Who, then, had taken the horse? That is a question which we are able to
answer, though Tony could not.

Fifteen minutes before Sam Payson, whose place Tom had taken, with a
companion, Ben Hardy, while wandering through the woods had espied a
horse.

"Hallo!" said Ben, "here's a horse."

"So it is," said Sam. "It's rather odd that he should be tied here."

"I wonder whose it is?"

Sam had been examining him carefully, and had recognized him.

"It's Mr. Porter's Bill. Don't you see that white spot? That's the way
I know him. I have harnessed that horse fifty times."

"But how did he come here? That's the question?"

"I'll tell you," said Sam. "I was at the hotel this morning, and heard
that that boy Tony was to go over to Thornton with him."

"That don't explain why he is tied here, does it?"

"Tony must have tied him while he was taking a tramp in the woods.
Wouldn't Porter be mad if he knew it?"

"I shouldn't wonder if Tony would get bounced."

"Nor I. I tell you what, Ben, I've a great mind to untie the horse, and
take him back myself."

"What's the good? It would be an awful job. We came out here to have
some fun," grumbled Ben.

"This would be fun to me. I'll get Tony into trouble, and very likely
get back the place he cheated me out of. I guess it'll pay."

"All right, Sam. I didn't think of that. I'd like to see how Tony looks
when he comes back, and finds the horse gone."

"It'll serve him right," said Sam. "What business had he to interfere
with me, I'd like to know."

"If you're going to do it you'd better hurry up. He may go back any
time."

"That's so. Here goes, then."

In a trice Bill was untied, and Sam taking the halter led him away.
When Tony came up he was not in sight.

Though Tony felt convinced that Rudolph had carried away the horse, he
felt it to be his duty to look about for it. There was a bare chance
that he might find it somewhere in the wood. In this way he lost
considerable time. Had he started for the hotel immediately he would
very likely have overtaken the two boys.

Sam kept on his way, and finally arrived at the hotel.

As he led the horse into the stable-yard James, the hostler, exclaimed
in surprise:

"How came you by that horse, Sam Payson?"

"Is that the way you thank me for bringing him back?" asked Sam.

"He left the stable under the charge of Tony Rugg this morning."

"Pretty care he takes of him, then."

"What do you mean? Where did you find him?"

"Down in the woods?"

"What woods?"

"Between here and Thornton."

"Wasn't Tony with him?"

"No."

"Are you sure of that? Are you sure you two boys didn't attack Tony and
take the horse away?" demanded James, suspiciously.

"No, we didn't. If you don't believe me, you may ask Ben."

"How was it, Ben?" he asked.

"Just as Sam has said. We found the horse alone in the woods. We
thought he might be stolen, and we brought him home. It was a good deal
of trouble, for it's full two miles."

James looked from one to the other in perplexity.

"I don't understand it at all," he said. "It don't look like Tony to
neglect his duty that way."

"You've got too high an opinion of that boy entirely," said Sam,
sneeringly.

[Illustration: Tony sprung forward and seized the would-be murderer by
the arm. (See page 182.)]




CHAPTER XXVII.

TONY IS DISCHARGED.


Presently Tony came into the yard. He was looking very sober. He had
lost the horse, and he didn't know how to excuse himself. He didn't
feel that he had been to blame, but he suspected that he should be
blamed nevertheless.

"What did you do with the horse, Tony?" asked James.

"He was stolen from me," answered Tony.

"How could that be?"

"I expect it was the Quaker."

"The Quaker!" repeated James, in amazement. "Are you sure you're not
crazy--or drunk?"

"Neither one," said Tony. "It's a long story and----"

"You must tell it to Mr. Porter then. He wants to see you right off.
But I'll tell you for your information that the horse is here."

"Is here? Who brought it?"

"Sam Payson brought it a short time since."

"Sam Payson! Where did he say he found it?"

"In the woods."

"Then he might have left it there," said Tony, indignantly. "What
business had he to untie it, and give me all this trouble?"

"You can speak to Mr. Porter about that."

"Where is he?"

"In the office."

Tony entered the office.

Mr. Porter regarded him with a frown.

"How is this, Tony?" he began. "You leave my horse in the woods to be
brought home by another boy. He might have been stolen, do you know
that?"

"I've been deceived, and led into a trap," said Tony.

"What on earth do you mean? Who has deceived and trapped you?"

"The Quaker who was stopping here. Has he come back?"

"He has settled his bill and left the hotel. What cock-and-bull story
is this you have hatched up?"

"It is a true story, Mr. Porter. This man was not a Quaker at all. He
was a tramp."

"Take care what you say, Tony. Do you take me for a fool?"

"He is a man I used to know. When I was coming home he was waiting for
me in the woods, only I didn't know who he really was. He told me there
was a man who had fallen into a well in the woods, and he wanted my
help to get him out. So I tied the horse and went with him. I wouldn't
have left him but for the story of the man in the well."

"Go on," said the landlord. "I warn you I don't believe a word of this
wonderful story of yours."

"I can't help it," said Tony, desperately. "It's true."

"Go on, and I'll give you my opinion of it afterward."

"Just before we got to the well a branch took off his hat and wig, and
I saw that he was no Quaker, but my enemy, Rudolph Rugg."

"Rudolph Rugg! A very good name for a romance."

Tony proceeded:

"Then I tried to get away, but it was too late. The man seized me and
threw me down the well. But first he told me that he knew who I was,
and that I was heir to a large fortune."

"Indeed! How happens it that you are not at the bottom of the well
still?"

"I got out."

"So I see; but how?"

"I climbed up by the stones till I reached the rope, and then I found
it easy. I hurried to where I had left the horse, but it was gone. I
supposed that the Quaker had taken it, but James tells me Sam Payson
found it and brought it back."

"Look here, boy," said the landlord, sternly, "do you expect me to
believe this romance of yours?"

"I don't know whether you will or not, sir. All I can say is that it is
the exact truth."

"I cannot keep you in my employ any longer. I have been deceived by
you, and should no longer trust you. You certainly have mistaken your
vocation. You are not fit to be a stable boy."

"I should like to know what I am fit for," said Tony, despondently.

"I will tell you, then. Judging from the story you have told me, I
should think you might succeed very well in writing a romance. I don't
know whether it pays, but you can try it."

"Some time you will find out that I have told the truth," said Tony.

"Perhaps so, but I doubt it."

"When do you want me to go?"

"You can stay till to-morrow morning. Wait a minute. Here is a
five-dollar bill. That is a fair price for the time you have been with
me."

As Tony was going out he came near having a collision with Sam Payson.

Sam looked at him inquiringly.

"Have you been discharged?" he asked.

"Yes," said Tony. "It was your fault. What made you take that horse?"

"I was afraid Mr. Porter might lose it. Is he in?"

"Yes. You can apply for my place, if you want to."

"I mean to."

Sam went in, and addressed the landlord.

"I brought your horse back," he said.

"Thank you. Here's two dollars for your trouble."

Sam tucked it away with an air of satisfaction.

"Tony tells me he is going away."

"Yes. He don't suit me."

"Wouldn't I suit you?" asked Sam, in an ingratiating tone.

"No; I've tried you, and you won't suit," was the unexpected reply.

"But I brought back the horse," pleaded Sam, crest-fallen.

"I've paid you for that," said the landlord. "Didn't I pay you enough?"

"Yes, sir; but I thought you'd take me back again."

"I know you too well, Sam Payson, to try any such experiment. The Widow
Clark told me yesterday that she wanted to get her boy into a place,
and I am going to offer it to him."

"He don't know anything about horses," said Sam.

"He will soon learn. He is a good boy, and industrious. I am sure he
will suit me better than you."

"I wish I hadn't brought back his old horse," muttered Sam, as he left
the office and went back into the yard. He hoped to triumph over Tony
by telling him that he had taken his place, but the opportunity was not
allowed him.

"Well, Sam, are you going to take my place?" asked Tony.

"No, I'm not," said Sam.

"Didn't you ask for it?"

"The old man had promised it to another boy," said Sam, sourly.

"He's been pretty quick about it, then," said James.

"A boy that don't know the first thing about horses," grumbled Sam.

"Who is it?"

"Joe Clark."

"He's a good boy; I'm glad he's coming, though I'm sorry to lose Tony."

"Thank you, James," said Tony. "I'd like to stay, but I can't blame Mr.
Porter for not believing my story. It was a strange one, but it's true
for all that."

James shrugged his shoulders.

"Then you believe you're heir to a fortune, as he told you?"

"Yes; he had no reason to tell me a lie."

"What's that?" asked Sam.

"The Quaker gentleman who was here told Tony that he was heir to a
large fortune."

"Ho, ho!" laughed Sam, boisterously. "That's a likely story, that is."

"Why isn't it?" asked Tony, frowning.

"You heir to a fortune--a clodhopper like you! Oh! I shall split!" said
Sam, giving way to another burst of merriment.

"I am no more a clodhopper than you are," said Tony, "and I advise you
not to laugh too much, or I may make you laugh on the other side of
your mouth."

"It'll take more than you to do it," said Sam, defiantly.

"I have done it already, Sam Payson, and I'm ready to try it again
before I leave town."

"I wouldn't dirty my hands with you," said Sam, scornfully.

"You'd better not."

When Sam had gone, Tony turned to James.

"I wonder whether I shall ever see you again, James?" he said,
thoughtfully.

"I hope so, Tony. I'm sorry you're going; but you couldn't expect Mr.
Porter to believe such a story as that."

"Then you don't believe it, James? I'll come back some day just to
prove to you that it is true."

"Come back at any rate; I shall be glad to see you. When do you go?"

"To-morrow morning."

"Where shall you go first?"

"To New York; but I'll help you till I go."

So Tony did his work as usual for the remainder of the day. He felt
rather sober. Just as he had found a home his evil genius, in the
character of Rudolph, appeared and deprived him of it.




CHAPTER XXVIII.

THE WORLD BEFORE HIM.


Though Tony was out of a place he was considerably better off than he
had generally been. He had five dollars in his pocket for the first
time in his life. A few weeks ago he would have considered himself rich
with this amount, and would have been in high spirits. But now he took
a different view of life. He had known what it was to have a settled
home, and to earn an honest living, and he had learned to like it. But
fortune was against him, and he must go.

"Good-by, James," he said, soberly, to the hostler the next morning.

"Good-by, Tony, and good luck," said the kind-hearted hostler.

"I hope I shall have good luck, but I don't expect it," said Tony.

"Pooh, nonsense! You're young, and the world is before you."

"That's so, James, but so far the world has been against me."

"Come here a minute, Tony," said James, lowering his voice.

As Tony approached, he thrust a bank-note hastily into his hand.

"Take it," he said, quickly. "I don't need it, and you may."

Tony looked at the bill, and found it was a ten-dollar note.

"You're very kind, James," he said, touched by a kindness to which he
was unaccustomed, "but I can't take it."

"Why not? I shan't need it."

"Nor I, James. I've got some money. It isn't much, but I'm used to
roughing it. I've done it all my life. I always come down on my feet
like a cat."

"But you may get hard up."

"If I do, I'll let you know."

"Will you promise that?"

"Honor bright."

So James took back the money reluctantly, and Tony bade him good-by.

It was a rainy day when Tony arrived in New York. The stores were
deserted, and the clerks lounged idly behind the counter. Only those
who were actually obliged to be out appeared in the streets. If Tony's
hopes had been high they would have been lowered by the dreary weather.
He wandered aimlessly about the streets, having no care about his
luggage for he had brought none, looking about him listlessly. He found
himself after a while in the lower part of Broadway, not far from the
Battery. It is here, as my city readers know, the most of the European
steamer lines have their offices.

At once Tony saw a figure that attracted his eager attention.

It was Rudolph Rugg, his old comrade, and now bitter enemy.

"Where is he going?" thought Tony.

This question was soon solved.

Rudolph entered the office of the Anchor Line of steamers.

"What can he want there?" thought Tony. "I'll watch him."

He took a position near by, yet far enough off to avoid discovery,
and waited patiently for Rudolph to reappear. He waited about fifteen
minutes. Then he saw the tramp come out with a paper in his hand, which
he appeared to regard with satisfaction. He turned and went up Broadway.

As soon as he thought it safe Tony crossed the street and entered the
office. He made his way up to the counter and inquired the price of
passage. The rates were given him.

"Can you tell me," he asked, carelessly, "if a Mr. Rugg is going across
on one of your steamers?"

"Mr. Rugg? Why, it is the man who just left the office."

"Did he buy a passage ticket?"

"Yes."

"When does he sail?"

"On Saturday."

"And where does he go?"

"To Liverpool, of course. Can I sell you a ticket?"

"I haven't decided," said Tony.

"If you go, you will find it to your advantage to go by our line."

"I'll go by your line, if I go at all," said Tony. "I wonder whether
he'd be so polite if he knew I had but three dollars and a quarter in
my pocket?" said our hero to himself.

Then he began to wonder how it happened that Rudolph was going. First,
it was a mystery where he could have obtained the money necessary for
the purchase of a ticket. Next, what could be his reason for leaving
America.

"Probably he has picked somebody's pocket," thought Tony.

That disposed of the difficulty, but, as we know, Tony was mistaken. It
was money that he had received for a worse deed, but Tony never thought
of connecting the state of Rudolph's purse with the attempt that had
been made upon his own life.

When Tony came to think of it he felt glad that Rudolph was going
abroad. He felt that his own life would be safer with an ocean flowing
between him and the man who latterly had exhibited such an intense
hatred for him. As to his motive, why perhaps he thought that he would
be safer in London than in New York.

Tony bethought himself of securing a temporary home. He was not a
stranger in New York, and knew exactly where to go. There was a house
not far from Greenwich street, where he had lodged more than once
before, and where he was known. It was far from a fashionable place,
but the charge was small, and that was a necessary consideration with
Tony.

He rang the bell, and the proprietor, a hard-favored woman of fifty,
came to open it.

"How do you do, Mrs. Blodgett?" said Tony.

"Why, it's Tony," said the woman, not unkindly. "Where have you been
this long time?"

"In the country," answered our hero.

"And where is your father?"

"Do you mean the man I used to be with?"

"Yes. He was your father, wasn't he?"

"No. He was no relation of mine," said Tony, hastily. "We used to go
together, that is all."

"Where is he?"

"I don't know exactly. We had a falling out, and we've parted."

"Well, Tony, what can I do for you?"

"Have you got any cheap room to let, Mrs. Blodgett?"

"I've got a room in the attic. It's small, but if it'll suit you, you
can have it for a dollar a week."

"It's just the thing," said Tony, in a tone of satisfaction. "Can I go
right up?"

"Yes, if you want to. I generally want a week's pay in advance, but
you've been here before----"

"No matter for that. Here's the money," said Tony.

"I'll show you the way up."

"All right. I guess I'll lie down awhile. I've been about the streets
all day, and am pretty tired."

The room was quite small, and the furniture was shabby and well-worn;
but Tony was not particular. He threw himself on the bed, and soon fell
asleep.

How long he slept he did not know, but when he woke up the room was
quite dark. He stretched, and did not immediately remember where he
was; but it flashed upon him directly.

"I wonder what time it is?" he asked himself. "I must have slept a long
time. I feel as fresh as a lark. I'll get up a take and tramp."

When he went down stairs he found that it was already ten o'clock.

"I feel as fresh as if it were morning," thought Tony. "I'll go out on
Broadway and watch some of the theatres when the people come out."

Ten o'clock seems late in the country; it is the usual hour for
retiring for many families; but in the city it is quite different.
There are still many to be seen in the streets, and for many it is the
commencement of a season of festivity.

Tony walked for half an hour. He was so thoroughly rested that he
felt no fatigue. Presently he stepped into a crowded billiard-room,
and seating himself, began to watch a game between a young man of
twenty-five and a man probably fifteen years his senior. The first was
evidently a gentleman by birth and education; his dress and manners
evinced this. The other looked like an adventurer, though he was
well-dressed.

"Come, let us play for drinks," said the elder.

"I've drank enough," said the young man.

"Nonsense. You can stand a little more."

"Just as you say."

The game terminated in favor of the elder, and the drinks were brought.

This went on for some time. The young man was evidently affected.
Finally he threw down his cue, and said;

"I won't play again."

"Why not?"

"My hand is unsteady. I have drank too much."

"I've drank as much as you, but I am all right."

"You can stand more than I. I'll settle for the drinks and games and go
home."

"Shan't I see you home?" asked the elder.

"I don't want to trouble you."

"No trouble at all."

The young man paid at the bar, displaying a well-filled pocketbook.
There was something in his companion's expression which made Tony
suspicious. He formed a sudden resolve.

"I'll follow them," he said, and when they left the room he was close
behind them.




CHAPTER XXIX.

A STRANGE ADVENTURE.


The young man leaned on the arm of his companion. He was affected
by the potations in which he had indulged, and was sensible of his
condition.

"I ought not to have drank so much," he said, in unsteady accents.

"Pooh! it's nothing," said the other, lightly. "Where are you stopping?"

"St. Nicholas."

"We'd better walk; it will do you good to walk."

"Just as you say."

"Of course, I would only advise you for your good."

"I know it; but old fellow, why did you make me drink so much?"

"I thought you could stand it better. I'm as cool as a cucumber."

He pressed the young man's arm, and led him into a side street.

"What's that for? This ain't the way to St. Nicholas."

"I know it."

"Why don't you go up Broadway?"

"You are not fit to go in yet. You need a longer walk, so that your
condition will not be noticed when you go in."

"Go along old fellow; you're right."

Still Tony kept behind. All seemed right enough, but somehow he could
not help feeling suspicious of the older man.

"I'll watch him," he thought, "and if he attempts any mischief I'll
interfere."

The two men walked in a westerly direction, crossing several streets.

"Look here," said the young man, "we'd better turn back."

Now was the time.

The other looked swiftly around, but did not notice Tony, who was
tracking him in the darkness.

"Give me your watch and money at once, or I'll blow your brains out."

"Look here, you're only trying to play a joke on me."

"You're mistaken. I'm a desperate man. I will do as I say."

"Then you're a villain," said the young man, with spirit. "You've made
me drunk in order to rob me."

"Precisely. Your money or your life. That's about what I mean."

"I'll call the police."

"If you do it will be your last word. Now make up your mind."

The young man, instead of complying, endeavored to break away, but in
his intoxication he had lost half his strength, and was no match for
the other.

"You fool! your blood be on your own hands!" said his companion, and he
drew a pistol from his side pocket.

An instant and he would have fired, but Tony was on the alert. He
sprang forward, seized the would-be murderer by the arm, and the pistol
went off, but the bullet struck a brick wall on the opposite side of
the street.

"Police!" shouted Tony, at the top of his lungs.

"Confusion!" exclaimed the villain. "I must be getting out of this."

He turned to fly, but Tony seized him by the coat, and he struggled
fiercely, but in vain.

"Let go, you young scoundrel!" he shouted, "or I'll shoot you."

"With an unloaded pistol?" asked Tony. "That don't scare much."

A quick step was heard, and a policeman turned the corner.

"What's the matter?" he asked.

"I charge this man with an attempt at murder," said Tony.

"The boy is right," said the young man.

"They are both lying," said the adventurer, furiously. "It's a plot
against me."

"I know you, Bill Jones," said the policeman, after a careful scrutiny
of the man's features. "You're a hard ticket. Come along with me. You
two must go with me to prefer your charge."

"Let me have your arm, my boy," said the young man; "I'm ashamed to own
that I need your help. It is the last time I will allow liquor to get
the better of me."

"I guess you're about right there," said Tony. "You've had a narrow
escape."

"I owe my life to you," said the young man, warmly. "How did you happen
to come up just in the nick of time?"

"I suspected the man meant you no good. I followed you from the
billiard saloon, where I saw you playing."

"You were sharper than I. I never suspected harm. You have done me the
greatest possible service."

"Curse the young brat!" muttered the man in custody. "I'd like a good
chance to wring your neck."

"I've no doubt of it," said Tony. "I'll keep out of your way."

The station house was not far off. The party entered. The charge was
formally made, and Tony and the young man went out.

"Won't your father and mother feel anxious about your being out so
late?" asked George Spencer, for this was the young man's name.

"I don't think they will," answered Tony. "I haven't got any for that
matter."

"Who do you live with then?"

"I take care of myself."

"Have you no one belonging to you?"

"Not one."

"Are you poor?" asked Spencer, for the first time taking notice of
Tony's rather shabby apparel.

"Oh, no," said our hero. "I've got a little over two dollars in my
pocket."

"Is that all?"

"Yes, and it's a good deal more than I generally have."

"You don't say so. How do you make your living?"

"Any way I can. Any way that's honest."

"And don't you ever get discouraged--down in the mouth?"

"Not often," answered Tony. "I've always got along, and I guess
something will turn up for me. But there's one thing I'm sorry for."

"What's that?"

"I would like to get some sort of an education; I don't know much."

"Can you read?"

"A little, and write a little. I mostly picked it up myself."

The young man whistled.

"Have you any place to sleep to-night?"

"I've hired an attic room for a week."

"What do you pay?"

"A dollar a week."

"Of course, it's a poor room?"

"Yes; but it's all I can expect, and better than I often have. Why,
I've slept in barns and under haystacks plenty of times."

"What is your name?"

"Tony Rugg."

"Well, Tony, you must come and stop with me to-night."

"With you?"

"Yes; at the St. Nicholas Hotel. You can help me get there, and share
my room."

Tony hesitated.

"Do you mean it?" he asked.

"Why shouldn't I?"

"Because you're a gentleman, and I--do you know what they call me?"

"What?"

"Tony, the Tramp."

"It is your misfortune and not your fault. I repeat my invitation--will
you come?"

"I will," answered Tony.

He saw that the young man was in earnest, and he no longer persisted in
his refusal.

"To-morrow morning I will talk with you further about your affairs. I
want to do something for you."

"You are very kind."

"I ought to be. Haven't you saved my life? But there is the hotel."

Tony and his new friend entered the great hotel. It was brilliantly
lighted, though it was now nearly midnight.

Mr. Spencer went up to the desk.

"My key," he said; "No. 169."

"Here it is, sir."

"This young man will share my room; I will enter his name."

The clerk looked at Tony in surprise. He looked rather shabby for a
guest of the great caravansery.

"Has he luggage?" asked the clerk.

"None to-night; I will pay his bill."

"All right, sir."

They got into the elevator, and presently came to a stop. Mr. Spencer
opened the door of 169.

It was a good-sized and handsomely furnished chamber, containing two
beds.

"You will sleep in that bed, Tony," said Spencer. "I feel dead tired.
Will you help me off with my coat?"

Scarcely was the young man in bed than he fell asleep. Tony lay awake
some time, thinking of his strange adventure.

"It's the first time in my life," he said to himself, "when I've had
two beds--one here and the other at my lodgings. What would Rudolph say
if he knew I was stopping at a fashionable hotel, instead of being at
the bottom of the well, where he threw me?"




CHAPTER XXX.

BREAKFAST AT THE ST. NICHOLAS.


When Tony woke up in the morning he looked about him with momentary
bewilderment, wondering where he was.

George Spencer was already awake.

"How did you sleep, Tony?" he asked.

"First rate."

"It must be late. Please look at my watch and tell me what time it is."

"Half-past eight," said Tony, complying with his request. "Why, it's
late."

"Not very. I didn't get up until ten yesterday. Well, what do you say
to getting up and having some breakfast?"

"Am I to breakfast with you, Mr. Spencer?"

"To be sure you are, unless you have another engagement," added
Spencer, jocosely.

"If I have it can wait," said Tony. "How much do they charge here for
board, Mr. Spencer?"

"Four or five dollars a day. I really don't know exactly how much."

"Four or five dollars a day!" exclaimed Tony, opening his eyes in
amazement. "How much I shall cost you!"

"I expect you will cost me a good deal, Tony," said the young man. "Do
you know, I have a great mind to adopt you!"

"Do you really mean it, Mr. Spencer?"

"Yes; why shouldn't I. I like what I have seen of you, and I have
plenty of money."

"It must be a nice thing to have plenty of money," said Tony,
thoughtfully.

"There is danger in it, too, Tony. I am ashamed to tell you how much I
have spent in gambling and dissipation."

"I wouldn't do it, Mr. Spencer," said Tony, soberly.

"Capital advice, Tony. I am going to keep you with me for fear I might
forget, that is, if you think you will like me well enough to stay."

"I am sure to like you, Mr. Spencer, but you may get tired of me."

"I'll let you know when I do, Tony. How much income do you think I
have?"

"A thousand dollars!" guessed Tony, who considered that this would be a
very large income.

Spencer laughed.

"It is over ten thousand," he said.

"Ten thousand!" exclaimed Tony. "How can you spend it all?"

"I did spend it all, last year, Tony, and got a thousand dollars in
debt. I gambled, and most of it went that way. But I'll leave that off.
I shall have you to take up my time, now."

"Did you know that man you played billiards with last night, Mr.
Spencer?"

"I made his acquaintance in a gambling house, and I was well punished
for keeping company with such a man."

Tony was now nearly dressed.

"You didn't get your clothing from a fashionable tailor, I should
judge," said his new guardian.

"No," said Tony, "I haven't been to fashionable tailors much."

"After breakfast I must go with you and see you properly clothed. If
you are to be my ward, I must have your appearance do me credit."

"How very kind you are to me, Mr. Spencer," said Tony, gratefully. "I
don't know how to repay you."

"You've done something in that way already."

"It seems like a dream that a poor boy like me should be adopted by a
rich gentleman."

"It is a dream you won't wake up from very soon. Now if you are ready
we will go down to breakfast."

Tony hung back.

"Won't you be ashamed to have me seen with you in these clothes?" he
asked.

"Not a bit. Besides you will soon be in better trim. Come along, Tony."

They went down together, and entered the breakfast room. A considerable
number of persons were there. Several stared in surprise at Tony as he
entered and took his seat. Our hero noticed it, and it made him nervous.

"Do you see how they look at me?" he said.

"Don't let it affect your appetite, Tony," said his friend. "When you
appear among them again you will have no reason to feel ashamed."

A speech which Tony heard from a neighboring table did not serve to
reassure him.

An over-dressed lady of fifty said to a tall, angular young lady, her
daughter:

"Elvira, do you see that very common-looking boy at the next table?"

"Yes, ma."

"He looks low. He is not as well dressed as our servants. It is very
strange they should let him eat at an aristocratic hotel like this."

"Isn't he with that gentleman, ma?"

"It looks like it. He maybe the gentleman's servant. I really think it
an imposition to bring him here."

Mr. Spencer smiled.

"Don't mind it, Tony," he said. "I know those people by sight. They
are parvenus. I suppose you don't understand the word. They are vulgar
people who have become rich by a lucky speculation. They will change
their tune presently. What will you have for breakfast?"

"There's such a lot of things," said Tony, "I don't know what to
choose."

"You'll get used to that. I'll order breakfast for both."

The waiter appeared, and Mr. Spencer gave the order.

The waiter looked uncomfortable.

"Mr. Spencer," he said, "it's against the rules for you to bring your
servant to the table with you."

"I have not done so," said Mr. Spencer, promptly. "This young gentleman
is my ward."

"Oh, excuse me," said the waiter, confused.

"Has any one prompted you to speak to me about him?"

"Those ladies at the next table."

"Then those ladies owe an apology to my ward," said the young man, loud
enough for the ladies to hear.

The shot told. The ladies looked confused and embarrassed, and Tony and
his guardian quietly finished their breakfast.

There was another lady who noticed Tony, and this was Mrs. Harvey
Middleton. She was to sail for England in the afternoon.

As Tony and Mr. Spencer were going out of the breakfast-room, they met
her entering.

She started at the sight of Tony, and scanned his face eagerly.

"Who are you, boy?" she asked, quickly, laying her hand on his arm.

Tony was too surprised to answer, and Mr. Spencer answered for him.

"It is my ward, madame," he answered. "He has been roughing it in the
country, which accounts for the state of his wardrobe."

"O, I beg pardon, sir," said Mrs. Middleton. "I thought his face looked
familiar."

"You see, Tony, that your appearance attracts attention," said Mr.
Spencer, laughing. "Now we'll go out, and I'll get you a fit-out."

They went to a well-known clothier's, and Mr. Spencer purchased two
handsome suits for our hero, one of which he put on at once. At another
place a plentiful supply of under-clothing was purchased. Next a hat
and shoes were procured. Tony's hair was cut, he took a bath, and
in a couple of hours he was transformed into a young gentleman of
distinguished appearance.

"Really, Tony, I shouldn't have known you," said his friend.

"I shouldn't have known myself," said Tony. "I almost think it must be
some other boy. Who'd think I was Tony, the Tramp, now?"

"You are not to be a tramp any longer. I have not yet formed my plans
for you, but I shall soon. I suppose, Tony, your education has been
neglected."

"I should think it had," answered Tony. "I'm as ignorant as a horse."

"Then you ought to learn something."

"I wish I could."

"You shall, but, as I said, I must arrange details later."

       *       *       *       *       *       *       *

About this time Rudolph and Mrs. Middleton were conversing, preparatory
to starting for the steamer.

"You are sure the boy is dead?" she said.

"Sure? I ought to be. Didn't I see him dead with my own eyes?"

"I saw a boy this morning who looked as I suppose the boy would have
looked--of the same age, too."

"Where did you see him?"

"He was with a gentleman, coming out of the breakfast-room as I was
entering it."

"It couldn't have been he," said Rudolph, positively. "Even if he were
alive, he wouldn't be here. But he's dead, I tell you. There's no doubt
of it."

"There are strange resemblances," said the lady. "But, of course, it
couldn't have been the boy. Indeed, the gentleman with him told me that
it was his ward."

Rudolph laughed.

"Tony wasn't likely to have a gentleman for a guardian," he said.

But Rudolph would have felt less easy in his mind if he had known that
the boy whom he supposed dead at the bottom of a well was really in the
hotel at that very moment.




CHAPTER XXXI.

TONY AND HIS GUARDIAN SET UP HOUSEKEEPING.


"Now, Tony," said George Spencer, after dinner, "I want to tell you
what plans I have formed for you and myself. I have got tired of hotel
life, and want a home. I shall seek a couple of handsomely-furnished
rooms up town, make it social and pleasant with books and pictures, and
we will settle down and enjoy ourselves."

"I am afraid you will get tired of me, Mr. Spencer," said Tony,
modestly. "I am too ignorant to be much company for you."

"Ignorance, like poverty, can be remedied," said the young man. "I
shall obtain a private tutor for you, and expect you to spend some
hours daily in learning." Tony's face brightened up.

"That is just what I would like," he said.

"You would like it better than going to school?"

"Yes, for at school I should be obliged to go into a class with much
younger boys."

"While with a tutor you can go on as fast as you please."

"Yes, sir."

"To-night we both need a little recreation. Suppose we go to some place
of amusement. Have you ever been to Barnum's?"

"Yes, sir, but I didn't take a reserved seat."

"I suppose not."

"I sat in the upper gallery."

"To-night you shall be fashionable. Have you a pair of kid gloves?"

"The last pair I had is worn out," said Tony, laughing.

"Then you must have another pair. We will get a pair on our way there."

It was already time to start.

At eight o'clock Tony found himself occupying an orchestra chair near
the stage, his hands encased in a pair of gloves of faultless fit,
and looking enough like a young patrician to pass muster among his
fashionable neighbors.

"How does it seem, Tony?" asked Spencer, smiling.

"Tip-top," answered Tony: "but how queer kid gloves feel. I never had a
pair on in my life before."

"There are the two ladies who found fault with your appearance at the
breakfast table this morning."

"They are looking at me through an opera-glass."

"Wondering if you can be the same boy. I have no doubt they are puzzled
to account for your transformation."

Mr. Spencer was right. The two ladies were at the same moment
exchanging remarks about our hero.

"Goodness, Elvira! there is that boy that was at breakfast this morning
at the hotel."

"The boy that was so shabbily dressed, mamma? Where?"

"Just to the left. He isn't shabby now. See how he is decked out. Who
would have thought it?"

"It's queer, isn't it?"

"I think we must have been mistaken about him. He looks like a young
gentleman now. But why should he have worn such clothes before?"

"I can't tell, I am sure."

"That's a nice-looking young man, Elvira. I wish he would take a fancy
to you."

"La! mamma, how you talk," said Elvira, bridling and smiling.

"Depend upon it, Tony, those ladies will be polite to you if they get a
chance," said Spencer, laughing.

"It makes a great deal of difference how a boy is dressed," said Tony.

"You are right, Tony. Remember you are fashionable now."

"There's a gentleman in front that I know," said Tony, suddenly.

"Where."

"The man with a partly bald head."

"How do you know him?"

"He was staying two or three days at the country hotel where I was
stable boy."

"Do you think he would know you now?"

"May I see?"

"Yes, but don't let him find you out. It won't do in society to let it
be known that you were ever a stable-boy."

"All right."

Tony leaned over, and addressing the gentleman, said:

"Would you be kind enough to lend me your programme a minute, sir?"

"Certainly," was the reply. Then, looking at Tony: "Your face looks
very familiar. Where have I seen you before?"

"Perhaps at the St. Nicholas, sir," said Tony; "I am stopping there."

"No; I never go to the St. Nicholas. Bless me! You're the very image of
a boy I have seen somewhere."

"Am I?" said Tony. "I hope he was good-looking?"

"He was; but he was not dressed like you. In fact--I remember now--he
was employed as stable-boy in a country hotel."

"A stable boy!" exclaimed Tony, with comic horror. "I hope you don't
think I am the boy."

"Of course not. But really the resemblance is striking."

"Mr. Spencer," said Tony, "this gentleman has met a stable boy who
looks like me."

"I really beg your pardon," said the gentleman; "I meant no offense."

"My ward would not think of taking offense," said Mr. Spencer,
courteously.

Tony smiled to himself; he had a strong sense of humor, and was much
amused.

It is needless to say that he enjoyed the performance--all the more so
from his luxurious seat and nearness to the stage.

"It's a good deal better than sitting in the gallery," he said, in a
whisper to his companion.

"I should think so. I never sat up there, Tony."

"And I never sat anywhere else."

As they were leaving the house, they found themselves close to the
ladies whom they had noticed at breakfast.

Elvira chanced to drop her handkerchief, probably intentionally.

Tony stooped and picked it up. Though he had led the life of a tramp,
he had the instincts of a gentleman.

"Thank you, young gentleman," said Elvira. "You are very polite."

"Oh, don't mention it," said Tony.

"Really, Mamma, he is a born gentleman," said Elvira, later, to her
mother. "How could we make such a mistake."

"His clothes were certainly very shabby, my dear."

"Very likely he had been out hunting or something. We must not judge so
hastily next time."

The ladies were foiled in their intentions of cultivating the
acquaintance of Tony and his guardian, as two days later they left
the hotel, and installed themselves in an elegant boarding-house on
Madison avenue.

"Now," said Mr. Spencer, "we must go to work."

"I must," said Tony.

"And I too," said Spencer.

"What can you have to do?"

"I have received a proposal to invest a part of my money--only
one-fourth--in a business down town, and shall accept. I don't need
to increase my income, but I think I shall be less likely to yield to
temptation if I have some fixed employment. I shall be so situated
that I can do as much or as little as I please. As to yourself I have
put an advertisement in a morning paper for a teacher, and expect some
applicants this morning. I want you to choose for yourself."

"I am afraid I shan't be a very good judge of teachers. Shall I examine
them to see if they know enough?"

"I think, from what you say of your ignorance, that any of them will
know enough to teach you for the present. The main thing is to select
one who knows how to teach, and whom you will like."

"I wish you were a teacher, Mr. Spencer."

"Why?"

"Because then I should have a teacher whom I liked."

"Thank you, Tony," said the young man, evidently gratified. "The liking
is mutual. I think myself fortunate in having you for my companion."

"The luck is on my side, Mr. Spencer. What would I be but for you. I
wouldn't be a tramp any more, for I am tired enough of that, but I
should have to earn my living as a newsboy or a bootblack, and have no
chance of getting an education."

So the relations between Tony and his new friend became daily more
close, until Mr. Spencer came to regard him as a young brother, in
whose progress he was warmly interested.

A tutor was selected, and Tony began to study. His ambition was roused.
He realized for the first time how ignorant he was, and it is not too
much to say that he learned in one month as much as most boys learn in
three. He got rid of the uncouth words he had acquired in early life,
and adapted his manners to the new position which he found himself
occupying in society. Mr. Spencer, too, was benefited by his new
friend. He gave up drink and dissipation, and contented himself with
pleasures in which he could invite Tony to participate.

Meanwhile Mrs. Harvey Middleton and Rudolph had arrived in England, and
we must leave our hero, for a time and join them.




CHAPTER XXXII.

HOME AGAIN.


When Mrs. Harvey Middleton reached England, she delayed but a day
in London to attend to necessary business. This business was solely
connected with her mission to America. Rudolph Rugg accompanied her to
the chambers of a well-known lawyer, and testified to having had the
charge of Tony, closing with the description of his death. Of course
nothing was said of the well, or about his having thrown him in, for
Rudolph was not a fool. The details of a probable story had been got
up by Mrs. Middleton and Rugg in concert. According to them and the
written testimony, Tony had been run over by a train on the Erie
railway, and a newspaper paragraph describing such an accident to an
unknown boy was produced in corroboration.

It was an ingenious fabrication, and Mrs. Middleton plumed herself upon
it.

"Poor boy!" she said, with a hypocritical sigh, "his was a sad fate."

"It was, indeed," said the lawyer; "but," he added, dryly, "you have no
cause to regret it, since it secures the estate."

"Don't mention it, Mr. Brief. It is sad to profit by such a tragedy."

"You don't take a business view of it, madame. Such things happen, and
if we can't prevent them, we may as well profit by them."

"Of course I will not refuse what has fallen in my way," said Mrs.
Middleton; "but I had formed the plan, if I found the boy alive, of
bringing him home and educating him for his position. He would not have
let me want."

"Don't she do it well, though?" thought Rudolph, who heard all this
with a cynical admiration for the ex-governess. "If I was a gentleman,
I'd make up to her, and make her Mrs. Rugg if she'd say the word."

"You think this man's evidence will substantiate my claim to the
estate?" she asked, after a pause.

"I should say there was no doubt on that point, unless, of course, his
evidence is impeached or contradicted."

"That is hardly likely, Mr. Brief. The poor man suffered much at the
death of the boy, to whom he was ardently attached."

"So you loved the boy, Mr. Rugg?" said the lawyer.

"Oh, uncommon," said Rudolph. "He was my pet, and the apple of my eye.
We was always together, Tony and I."

"And I suppose he loved you."

"He couldn't bear me out of his sight; he looked upon me as a father,
sir."

"If he'd come into the estate, he would probably have provided for
you," suggested the lawyer, watching him keenly.

"It's likely, sir. I wish he had."

"So it's a personal loss to you--the death of the boy."

"Yes, sir."

"Mrs. Middleton probably will not forget your services to the boy."

"No, sir. I shall, of course, do something for Mr. Rugg, though not as
much, perhaps, as my poor cousin would have done. Mr. Rugg, will you
see me to my carriage?"

"Certainly, ma'am."

Mrs. Middleton was anxious to go away. The conversation had taken a
turn which she did not like. It almost seemed as if the lawyer was
trying to find out something, and she thought it best to get Rudolph
away from the influence, lest Mr. Brief should catechise him, and draw
out something to her disadvantage.

"Mr. Rugg," she said, as they were going down stairs, "I advise you not
to go near Mr. Brief again."

"Why not, ma'am?"

"These lawyers are crafty. Before you knew what he was after, he would
extract the secret from you, and there would be trouble for both of us."

"Do you think so, ma'am? I didn't see nothing of it?"

"I think he suspects something. That matters nothing if it does not go
beyond suspicion. Unless he can impeach your testimony and draw you
into contradictions, we are safe, and you are sure of an income for
life."

"You needn't be afraid for me, ma'am. We are in the same boat."

She frowned a little at the familiar tone in which he spoke. It
was as if he put himself on an equality with her. But it was true,
nevertheless, and it was unpleasant for her to think of.

Was there nothing else that was unpleasant? Did she not think of the
poor boy who, as she thought, was killed, and at her instigation? Yes,
she thought often of him, but as much as she could she kept the subject
away from her thoughts.

"He's better off," she said to herself. "He didn't know anything of the
property, and he wasn't fit to possess it. All the troubles of life are
over for him."

"What are your plans, Mr. Rugg?" she asked.

"I have a mind to go down to Middleton Hall with you, ma'am. I used to
live there years ago, and I might find some of my old cronies."

"For that very reason you must not go," she said, hastily. "They
would be asking you all sorts of questions, and you'd be letting out
something."

"They wouldn't get nothing out of me."

"If you made no answer it would be as bad. They would suspect you."

"And you, too."

"Precisely."

"It's rather hard, Mrs. Middleton, I can't see my old friends."

"You can make new ones. A man with money can always find friends."

"That's true, ma'am," said Rudolph, brightening up. "Then you'd
recommend me to stay in London?"

"In London, or anywhere else that you like better. Only don't come
within twenty miles of Middleton Hall."

"Well, ma'am, you're wiser than I am, and you know better what it's
best to do."

"Of course I do. You are safe in being guided by me."

"But about the money, ma'am. How am I to get that if I don't see you?"

"Once a quarter I will pay in forty pounds to your account at any bank
you choose. You can let me know."

"All right, ma'am. It's strange to me to think of having a bank
account."

"It need not be strange henceforth. And now, Mr. Rugg, we must part.
I must hasten down to Middleton Hall to look after the estate. I have
been absent from it now for nearly three months."

"I suppose you are in a hurry to see your young man," said Rudolph,
with a grin.

"Mr. Rugg," said the lady, haughtily, "I beg you will make no reference
to my private affairs. You speak as if I were a nursery maid."

"I beg your pardon, ma'am. No offense was meant."

"Then none is taken. But remember my caution."

She stepped into the hansom which was waiting for her, and Rudolph
remained standing on the sidewalk.

"She's puttin' on airs," said the tramp, frowning. "She forgets all
about her bein' a governess once, without five pounds in the world. She
acts as if she were a lady born. I don't like it. She may try her airs
on others, but not on Rudolph Rugg. He knows a little too much about
Mrs. Harvey Middleton. Rich as you are, you're in his power, and if he
was so inclined he could bring you down from your high place, so he
could."

But Rudolph's anger was only transient. He was too astute not to
understand clearly that he could not harm Mrs. Middleton without
harming himself quite as much. As things stood, he was securely
provided for. No more tramping about the country for him in all
weathers. He had enough to lodge and feed him, and provide all the beer
and tobacco he could use. This was certainly a comfortable reflection.
So he sought out a comfortable lodging and installed himself before
night, determined to get what enjoyment he could out of London and the
income he had so foully won.

And Mrs. Middleton, she, too, congratulated herself.

She leaned back in the cab and gave herself up to joyful anticipations
of future happiness and security.

"Thank Heaven, I have got rid of that low fellow," she ejaculated,
inwardly. "I never want to see the brute again. He was necessary to
my purpose, and I employed him, but I should be glad if he would get
drowned, or be run over, or end his miserable life in some way, so that
I might never see or hear of him again."

But the thought of Rudolph did not long trouble her. She thought rather
of the handsome Captain Lovell, whom she loved, and to marry whom she
had committed this crime, and the hard woman's face softened, and a
smile crept over it.

"I shall soon see him, my Gregory," she murmured. "He will soon be
mine, and I shall be repaid for my long, wearisome journey."




CHAPTER XXXIII.

CAPTAIN GREGORY LOVELL.


A carriage drove rapidly up the avenue leading to Middleton Hall.

The hall was not large, but was handsome and well proportioned, and
looked singularly attractive, its gray walls forming a harmonious
contrast with the bright green ivy that partially covered them, and the
broad, smooth lawn that stretched out in front.

Mrs. Middleton regarded her home with unmingled satisfaction. It was
to be her home now as long as she lived. Now that the boy was dead no
one could wrest it from her. She would live there, but not in solitary
grandeur. The news of her success would bring Captain Gregory Lovell
to her side, and their marriage would follow as soon as decency would
permit. If afterward he should desire to have the name of the residence
changed to Lovell Hall, Mrs. Middleton decided that she would not
object. Why should she? She had no superstitious love for her present
name, while Lovell had for her the charm which love always gives to the
name of the loved one.

The housekeeper, stout and matronly, received her mistress at the door.

"Welcome home, Mrs. Middleton," she said; "how long it seems since you
went away."

"How do you do, Sarah," said her mistress, graciously. "I can assure
you I am glad to be back."

"You will find everything in order, mum, I hope and believe," said
Sarah. "We expected to see you sooner."

"I hoped to be back sooner, but the business detained me longer than I
desired."

"And did you succeed, mum, if I may be so bold," inquired the
housekeeper, curiously.

"As I expected, Sarah. I found that the poor boy was dead."

"Indeed, mum."

"I hoped to bring him back with me, according to my poor husband's
desire, but it was ordered otherwise by an inscrutable Providence."

Sarah coughed.

"It is very sad," she said, but she looked curiously at her mistress.

She knew very well that this sad news rejoiced the heart of Mrs.
Middleton, and the latter knew that she could not for a moment impose
upon her clear-sighted housekeeper. But the farce must be kept up for
the sake of appearances.

"Come up to my chamber with me, Sarah. I want to ask you what has been
going on since I went away? Have you heard from Lady Lovell's family?
Are they all well?"

Lady Lovell was the mother of Captain Gregory Lovell, and the question
was earnestly put.

"They are all well except the captain," answered Sarah.

"Is he sick?" demanded her mistress, turning upon her swiftly.

"No, mum; I only meant to say that the captain was gone away."

"Gone away! When? Where?"

"He's ordered to India, I believe, mum. He went away a month ago."

Mrs. Middleton sank into her chair, quite overcome. Her joy was
clouded, for the reward of her long and toilsome journey was snatched
from her.

"Did he not leave any message?" she asked. "Did he not call before he
went away?"

"Yes, mum. He left a note."

"Give it to me quick. Why did you not mention it to me before?"

"It's the first chance I got, mum. The letter is in my own chamber. I
took the best care of it. I will get it directly."

"Do go, Sarah."

Mrs. Middleton awaited the return of Sarah with nervous impatience.
Perhaps the captain had thrown her over, after all, and, loving him as
she did, this would have torn the heart of the intriguing woman, who,
cold and selfish as she was so far as others were concerned, really
loved the handsome captain.

Sarah speedily reappeared with the letter.

"Here it is, mum," she said. "I have taken the best care of it."

Mrs. Middleton tore it open with nervous haste This is the way it ran:


     "MY DEAR JANE--I am about to set out for India--not
     willingly, but my regiment is ordered there, and I must obey or
     quit the service. This, as you well know, I cannot do; for apart
     from my official pay, I have but a paltry two hundred pounds a
     year, and that is barely enough to pay my tailor's bill. I am
     sorry to go away in your absence. If I were only sure you would
     bring home good news, I could afford to sell my commission and
     wait. But it is so uncertain that I cannot take the risk.

     "I need not say, my dear Jane, how anxious I am to have all the
     impediments to our union removed. I am compelled to be mercenary.
     It is, alas! necessary for me, as a younger son, to marry a woman
     with money. I shall be happy, indeed, if interest and love go
     hand in hand, as they will if your absolute claim to your late
     husband's estate is proved beyond a doubt. I append my India
     address, and shall anxiously expect a communication from you on
     your return. If you have been successful, I will arrange to return
     at once, and our union can be solemnized without delay. Once more,
     farewell.

     "Your devoted
     "GREGORY LOVELL."


Mrs. Middleton, after reading this letter, breathed a sigh of relief.
He was still hers, and she had only to call him back. There would be a
vexatious delay, but that must be submitted to. She had feared to lose
him, and this apprehension, at least, might be laid aside.

To some the letter would have seemed too mercenary. Even Mrs. Middleton
could not help suspecting that, between love and interest, the latter
was far the most powerful in the mind of Captain Lovell. But she
purposely closed her eyes to this unpleasant suspicion. She was in love
with the handsome captain, and it was the great object of her life to
become his wife. She decided to answer the letter immediately.

Her desk was at hand, and she opened it at once, and wrote a brief
letter to her absent lover:


     "DEAR GREGORY--I have just returned. I am deeply
     disappointed to find you absent, for, my darling, I have
     succeeded. I have legal proof--proof that cannot be disputed--that
     the boy, my husband's cousin, is dead. The poor boy was
     accidentally killed. I have the sworn affidavit of the man who
     took him to America, and who was his constant companion there.

     "It is a sad fate for the poor boy. I sincerely deplore his
     tragical end--he was run over by a train of cars--yet (is it
     wicked?), my grief is mitigated by the thought that it removes all
     obstacle to our union. I do not for an instant charge you with
     interested motives. I am sure of your love, but I also comprehend
     the necessities of your position. You have been brought up as a
     gentleman, and you have the tastes of a gentleman. You cannot
     surrender your social position. It is necessary that, if you
     marry, you should have an adequate income to live upon. My darling
     Gregory, I am proud and happy in the thought that I can make you
     such. You know my estate. The rental is two thousand pounds, and
     that is enough to maintain our social rank. Come home, then, as
     soon, as you receive this letter. I am awaiting you impatiently,
     and can hardly reconcile myself to the delay that must be. Make it
     as short as possible, and let me hear from you at once.

     "Your own,
     "JANE MIDDLETON."


There was unexpected delay in the reception of this letter. It was
three months before it came into the hands of Captain Lovell. When at
length it was received, he read it with a mixture of emotions.

"Decidedly," he said, removing the cigar from his mouth, "the old girl
is fond of me. I wish I were fond of her, for I suppose I must marry
her. It will be rather a bad pill to swallow, but it is well gilded.
Two thousand pounds a year are not to be thrown away by a fellow in my
straits. The prospect might be brighter, but I suppose I have no right
to complain. It will make me comfortable for life. I must take care to
have the estate settled upon me, and then the sooner the old girl dies
the better."

So Captain Lovell wrote at once, saying that he would return home as
soon as he could make arrangements for doing so--that every day would
seem a month till he could once more embrace his dear Jane. The letter
was signed, "Your devoted Gregory."

Mrs. Middleton read it with unfeigned delight. Her plans had succeeded,
and the reward would soon be hers.

But there was fresh delay. Arrangements to return could not be made so
easily as Captain Lovell anticipated. It was seven months from the day
Mrs. Middleton reached England when Captain Lovell was driven to his
hotel in London. Meanwhile events had occurred which were to have an
effect upon Mrs. Middleton's plans.




CHAPTER XXXIV.

TONY ASTONISHES HIS OLD FRIENDS.


"Tony," said George Spencer one evening, "you have been making
wonderful progress in your studies. In six months you have accomplished
as much as I did at boarding school in two years when at your age."

"Do you really mean it, Mr. Spencer?" said Tony, gratified.

"I am quite in earnest."

"I am very glad of it," said Tony. "When I began I was almost
discouraged. I was so much behind boys of my age."

"And now your attainments raise you above the average. Your tutor told
me so yesterday when I made inquiries."

"I am rejoiced to hear it, Mr. Spencer, I was very much ashamed of
myself at first, and I did not like to speak before your friends for
fear they would find out what sort of a life I led. That is what made
me work so hard."

"Well, Tony, you may congratulate yourself on having succeeded. I think
you can venture now to take a little vacation."

"A vacation! I don't need one."

"Suppose it were spent in Europe?"

"What!" exclaimed Tony, eagerly, "you don't think of our going abroad?"

"Yes. The house with which I am connected wants me to go abroad on
business. If I go you may go with me if you would like it."

"Like it!" exclaimed Tony, impetuously. "There is nothing I would like
better."

"So I supposed," said George Spencer, smiling. "I may as well tell you
that our passage is taken for next Saturday, by the Russia."

"And this is Monday evening. How soon it seems!"

"There won't be much preparation to make--merely packing your trunk."

"Mr. Spencer," said Tony, "I want to ask a favor."

"What is it?"

"I have told you about being employed at a country hotel, just before I
came to the city and found you."

"Yes."

"I would like to go back there for a day, just to see how all my old
friends are."

"You don't mean to apply again for your old place?"

"Not unless you turn me off, and I have to find work somewhere."

"Turn you off, Tony! Why, I shouldn't know how to get along without
you. You are like a younger brother to me," said the young man,
earnestly.

"Thank you, Mr. Spencer. You seem like an older brother to me.
Sometimes I can hardly believe that I was once a tramp."

"It was your misfortune, Tony, not your fault. So you want to go back
and view your former home?"

"Yes, Mr. Spencer."

"Then you had better start to-morrow morning, so as to be back in good
time to prepare for the journey."

"Do you know, Mr. Spencer," said Tony, "I've got an idea. I'll go back
wearing the same clothes I had on when I left there."

"Have you got them still?"

"Yes, I laid them away, just to remind me of my old life. I'll take my
other clothes in a bundle, and after a while I can put them on."

"What is your idea in doing this, Tony?" asked the young man.

"I want to give them a surprise."

"Very well, do as you please. Only don't stay away too long."

       *       *       *       *       *       *

Tony proceeded to carry out the plan he had proposed.

He traveled by rail to a village near by, and then with his bundle
suspended to a stick, took up his march to the tavern.

He entered the familiar stable yard. All looked as it did the day
he left. There was only one person in the yard, and that one Tony
recognized at once as his old enemy, Sam Payson, who appeared to be
filling his old position, as stable boy.

"Hallo, Sam!" said Tony, whose entrance had not been observed.

Sam looked up and whistled.

"What, have you come back?" he said, not appearing overjoyed at the
sight of Tony.

"Yes, Sam," said Tony.

"Where have you been all the time?"

"In New York part of the time."

"What have you been doing for a living?"

"Well, I lived with a gentleman there."

"What did you do--black his boots?"

"Not exactly."

"Did he turn you off?"

"No; but he's going to Europe next Saturday."

"So you're out of a place?"

"I have no employment."

"What made you come back here?" demanded Sam, suspiciously.

"I thought I'd like to see you all again."

"That don't go down," said Sam roughly. "I know well enough what you're
after."

"What am I after?"

"You're after my place. You're hoping Mr. Porter will take you on
again. But it's no use. There ain't any chance for you."

"How long have you been back again, Sam?"

"Three months, and I am going to stay, too. You got me turned off once,
but you can't do it again."

"I don't want to."

"Oh, no, I presume not," sneered Sam. "Of course, you don't. You've got
on the same clothes you wore away, haven't you?"

"Yes, it's the same suit, but I've got some more things in my bundle."

"I guess you haven't made your fortune, by the looks."

"The fact is, Sam, I haven't earned much since I went away."

"I knew you wouldn't. You ain't so smart as people think."

"I didn't know anybody thought me smart."

"James, the hostler, is always talking you up to me, but I guess I can
rub along as well as you."

"You talk as if I was your enemy, Sam, instead of your friend."

"I don't want such a friend. You're after my place, in spite of all you
say."

Just then James, the hostler, came out of the stable.

"What, is it you, Tony?" he asked, cordially.

"Yes, James; I hope you're well."

"Tip-top; and how are you?" asked the hostler, examining Tony,
critically.

"I'm well."

"Have you been doing well?"

"I haven't wanted for anything. I've been with a gentleman in New York."

Here Mr. Porter appeared on the scene.

He too, recognized Tony.

"What! back again, Tony?" he said.

"I thought I'd just look in, sir."

"Do you want a place!"

"What sort of a place?"

"Your old place."

Sam heard this, and looked the picture of dismay. He took it for
granted that Tony would accept at once, and privately determined that
if he did he would give him a flogging, if it were a possible thing.

He was both relieved and surprised when Tony answered:

"I am much obliged to you, Mr. Porter, but I wouldn't like to cut out
Sam. Besides, I have a place engaged in New York."

"I would rather have you than Sam, any day."

"Thank you, sir, but I've made an arrangement, and can't break it."

"How long are you going to stay here?"

"If you've a spare room, I'll stay over till to-morrow."

"All right. Go into the office, and they'll give you one."

"I say, Tony," said Sam, after the landlord had gone, "you're a better
fellow than I thought you were. I thought you'd take my place when it
was offered you."

"You see you were mistaken, Sam. I'll see you again."

Tony went into the hotel--went up to a small chamber that had been
assigned him, changed his clothes for a handsome suit in his bundle,
took a handsome gold watch and chain from his pocket and displayed
them on his vest, and then came down again.

As he entered the yard again, Sam stared in amazement.

"It can't be you, Tony!" he said. "Where'd you get them clothes, and
that watch?"

"I came by them honestly, Sam."

"But I can't understand it," said Sam, scratching his head. "Ain't you
poor, and out of work?"

"I'm out of work, but not poor. I've been adopted by a rich gentleman,
and am going to sail for Europe on Saturday."

"Cracky! who ever heard the like? Wouldn't he adopt me, too?"

"I believe there is no vacancy," said Tony, smiling.

"Was that the reason you wouldn't take my place?"

"One reason."

"James!" called Sam, "just look at Tony now."

James stared, and when an explanation was made, heartily congratulated
our hero.

"Sam," said Tony, producing a couple of showy neck-ties, "to prove to
you that I am not your enemy, I have brought you these."

"They're stunning!" exclaimed the enraptured Sam. "I always thought you
was a good fellow, Tony. Are they really for me?"

"To be sure they are, but I'm afraid, Sam, you didn't always think
quite so well of me."

"Well, I do now. You're a trump."

"And, James, I've brought you a present too." Here Tony produced a
handsome silver watch with a silver chain appended. "It's to remember
me by."

"I'd remember you without it, Tony, but I'm very much obliged too. It's
a real beauty."

When the landlord was told of Tony's good fortune, he was as much
surprised as the rest. Our hero was at once changed to the handsomest
room in the hotel, and was made quite a lion during the remainder of
his stay.

There is something in success after all.

"Good-by, Tony," said Sam heartily, when our hero left the next day.
"You're a gentleman, and I always said so."

"Thank you, Sam. Good luck to you!" responded Tony, smiling.

"I'm a much finer fellow than when I was a tramp," he said to himself.
"Sam says so, and he ought to know. I suppose it's the way of the
world. And now for Europe!"




CHAPTER XXXV.

TONY'S BAD LUCK.


Two weeks later Tony and his friend were guests at a popular London
hotel, not far from Charing Cross.

"We will postpone business till we have seen a little of London," said
George Spencer. "Luckily my business is not of a pressing character,
and it can wait."

"You have been in London before, Mr. Spencer," said Tony. "I am afraid
you will find it a bore going round with me."

"Not at all. I spent a week here when a boy of twelve, and saw nothing
thoroughly, so I am at your disposal. Where shall we go first?"

"I should like to see Buckingham Palace, where the queen lives."

"She doesn't live there much. However, we'll go to see it, but we'll
take the Parliament House and Westminster Abbey on the way."

In accordance with this programme they walked--for the distance was
but short--to Westminster Abbey. It would be out of place for me to
describe here that wonderful church where so much of the rank and
talent of past ages lies buried. It is enough to say that Tony enjoyed
it highly. He afterward visited the Parliament House. This occupied
another hour. When they came out Mr. Spencer said:

"Tony, I have got to go to my banker's. Do you care to come?"

"No, thank you, Mr. Spencer, I would rather walk round by myself."

"Very well, Tony, just as you please. Only don't get lost."

"I'll take care of that; I'm used to cities."

"You are not used to London. It is one of the blindest cities in the
world; it is a complete labyrinth."

"I don't mean to get lost. You'll find me at the hotel at four o'clock."

"Very well. That will be early enough."

So George Spencer went his way, and Tony set out upon his rambles.

He found plenty to amuse him in the various buildings and sights of the
great metropolis. But after awhile he began to wonder where he was. He
had strayed into a narrow street, scarcely more than a lane, with a row
of tumble-down dwellings on either side.

"There's nothing worth seeing here," said our hero. "I'll inquire my
way to Charing Cross."

He went into a small beer house, and preferred his request.

"Charing Cross!" repeated the publican. "It's a good ways from 'ere."

"How far?" asked Tony.

"A mile easy, and there's no end of turns."

"Just start me, then," said Tony, "and I'll reach there. Which way is
it?"

"Turn to the left when you go out of this shop."

"All right, and thank you."

Tony noticed that there were three or four men seated at tables in
the back part of the shop, but he had not the curiosity to look at
them. If he had, he would have been startled, for among these men was
Rudolph Rugg, more disreputable than ever in appearance, for he had
been drinking deeply for the last six months. He stared at Tony as one
dazed, for he supposed him dead long ago at the bottom of a well three
thousand miles away.

"What's the matter, Rugg?" asked his companion. "You look as if you'd
seen a ghost."

"So I have," muttered Rugg, starting for the door.

"Where are you going?"

"I've got a headache," said Rudolph.

"You've left your drink."

"I don't want it."

"What's come over him?" said his late companion, in surprise.

"No matter. He'll be back soon."

Rudolph swiftly followed Tony. He wanted to find out whether it was
really the boy whom he had sought to murder or not. Then what did his
appearance in London mean? Was he possibly in search of him--Rugg? It
was wonderful, certainly. How had he obtained the means of coming to
England?--as a gentleman, too, for Rudolph had not failed to notice
his rich clothes. Had he obtained rich and powerful friends, and was he
in search of the inheritance that had been wrongfully kept from him?

Rudolph asked himself all these questions, but he could not answer one.

"If I could only ask him," he thought, "but that wouldn't be safe."

By this time he had come in sight of Tony, who was walking along
slowly, not feeling in any particular hurry.

An idea struck Rudolph.

A boy who had been employed in begging was standing on the sidewalk.

"Gi'me a penny, sir," he said.

Rudolph paused.

"Walk along with me, and I'll show you how you can earn half a crown,"
he said.

"Will you?" said the boy, his face brightening.

"Yes, I will, and you won't find it hard work, either."

"Go ahead, gov'nor."

"Do you see that boy ahead?"

"That young gentleman?"

"Yes," said Rudolph.

"I see him."

"I want you to manage to get him up to my room; it's No. 7 ---- street,
top floor, just at the head of the stairs."

"Shall I tell him you want to see him?"

"No, he wouldn't come. Tell him your poor grandfather is sick in
bed--anything you like, only get him to come."

"S'posin' he won't come?"

"Then follow him, and find out where he is staying. Do you understand?"

"Yes, gov'nor. I'll bring him."

"Go ahead, and I'll hurry round to the room. I'll be in bed."

"All right."

The boy was a sharp specimen of the juvenile London beggar. He was up
to the usual tricks of his class, and quite competent to the task which
Rudolph had engaged him to perform.

He came up to Tony, and then began to whimper.

"What's the matter, Johnny?" said Tony, addressing him by the usual New
York name for an unknown boy.

"Oh, my poor grandfather is so sick," said the boy.

"What's the matter with him?"

"I don't know. I guess he's goin' to die."

"Why don't you send for a doctor?"

"He wouldn't come--we're so poor."

"Do you live near here?"

"Oh, yes, sir; only a little way."

"I want to go to Charing Cross--is it much out of the way?"

"No, sir; it's right on the way there."

"Then, if you'll show me the way to Charing Cross afterward, I will
go round with you and look at your grandfather. Perhaps I can do
something for him."

"Oh, sir, how kind you are! I know'd you was a gentleman when I fust
saw you."

"When was your grandfather taken sick?"

"Two days ago," said the boy.

"Is he in bed?"

"Yes, sir. Leastways, he was when I came out. We didn't have no
breakfast."

"I am sorry for that. Don't you want to buy something to take to him?"

"If you'll give me a shillin', sir, I'll ask him what he can eat. Sick
folks can't eat the same things as the rest of us."

"To be sure. You are right. Well, here's a shilling."

"The boy little thinks that I have known many a time what it is to
be without breakfast or money to buy any," thought Tony. "I'll do
something for the poor man, if only to show how grateful I am for my
own good fortune."

He followed the boy for about ten minutes, until they reached rather a
shabby building. This was No. 7.

"Come right up after me," said the boy.

The two went up till they reached the room indicated by Rudolph. The
boy pushed the door open.

A sound of groaning proceeded from the bed.

"Grandfather, I've brought a kind young gentleman," said the boy.

"Come here," muttered the person in bed.

Tony came up to the bed.

In an instant Rudolph had thrown off the clothes and had him seized by
the arm.

"There's your money, boy. Go!" he said to the other, flinging a
half-crown.

"I've got you at last!" he shouted. "Now, you young villain, I'll get
even with you!"

His face was almost fiendish with rage, as he uttered these words.




CHAPTER XXXVI.

"I HATE YOU!"


To say that Tony was not startled would not be true. Without a moment's
warning he found himself in the power of his old enemy--completely in
his power, knowing, too, the desperate character of the man, which
would let him stick at nothing.

Rudolph enjoyed his evident surprise.

"I've been waiting for this," he said. "It's a great joy to me to have
you here in my power."

By this time Tony had collected himself, and had become composed.

"Rudolph," he said, "what makes you hate me so?"

"Haven't you tried to injure me--didn't you get me arrested? Do you
forget that night in the old miser's hut?"

"No, I don't forget it, but you forced me to act as I did. But even if
I did injure you, you took your revenge."

"When, and how?"

"When you threw me into the well. How could you do such a dark deed?
What had I done that you should seek to murder me?"

"How did you get out?" asked Rudolph, giving way to curiosity.

"I climbed out."

"How?"

"By means of the wall that lined the well. Finally I got hold of the
rope."

"So that was the way, was it? I ought to have made surer of your fate."

"How could you do that?"

"By throwing some rocks down on you," answered the tramp, with a
malignant frown.

"I am glad I have not such a wicked disposition as you, Rudolph," said
Tony, looking at him fixedly.

"Take care how you insult me, boy!" said Rudolph, angrily.

"I have no wish to insult you. Now tell me why you have lured me here?
I suppose you hired the boy."

"I did, and he did the work well," said the tramp, triumphantly.

"Well, now I am here, what do you want of me?"

"First, tell me how you happen to be in London? Did you know I was
here?"

"I knew you crossed the Atlantic."

"How?"

"I saw you buy your ticket."

"What?" exclaimed the tramp, in surprise. "Did you reach New York so
soon?"

"Yes. I lost my situation at the inn, for they did not believe my story
about having been thrown down the well by a Quaker."

Rudolph laughed.

"It was a good disguise," he said. "So they discharged you? That was
good."

"I did not think so at the time, but it proved to be the luckiest thing
that could happen to me."

"How was that?"

"It led me to go to New York. There I found a rich and generous friend.
I have been with him ever since."

"As a servant?"

"No; as his adopted brother. He supplied me with teachers, and in
little more than six months I have acquired as much as most boys do in
two or three years."

"So you have gone in for education, have you?" said Rudolph, sneering.

"Yes. Could I go in for anything better?"

"And you consider yourself a young gentleman, now, do you?"

"That is the rank I hold in society," said Tony, calmly.

"And you forget that you were once Tony, the Tramp?"

"No, Rudolph, I have not forgotten that. It was not my fault, and I am
not ashamed of it. But I should be ashamed if I had not left that kind
of life as soon as I was able."

"By Heaven, you shall go back to it!" said Rudolph, malignantly.

"I never will," answered Tony, gently, but firmly.

"I will force you to it."

"Neither you nor any one else can force me to it. I will black boots in
the street first."

"That will suit me just as well," said the tramp, laughing maliciously.
"You have grown too proud. I want to lower your pride, young popinjay."

"I am not afraid of anything you can do to me, Rudolph," said Tony,
bravely.

"Suppose I choose to kill you?"

"You won't dare do it. We are not in the woods now."

Tony had hit the truth. Rudolph did not dare to kill him, though he
would have been glad to. But he knew that he would himself be arrested,
and he had more to live for now than formerly. He had an income,
and comfortably provided for, and he did not choose to give up this
comfortable and independent life.

"No," he said, "I won't kill you; but I will be revenged for all that.
First, I will keep you from that generous friend of yours."

"What will he think has become of me?" thought Tony, uneasily.

A thought came to him. He would appeal to the man's love of money.

"Rudolph," he said, "I am afraid my friend will be uneasy about me. If
you will let me go I will give you ten pounds that I have in my pocket."

"I don't believe you have so much money," said Rudolph, cunningly.

Tony fell into the snare unsuspectingly. He drew out his pocket-book
and displayed two five-pound notes on the Bank of England.

Rudolph quickly snatched them from him.

"They are mine already," he said, with a mocking laugh.

"So I see," said Tony, coolly; "but I was about to offer you fifty
pounds besides."

"Have you the money in your pocketbook?"

"No, I haven't, but I could get it from Mr. Spencer."

"It don't go down, Tony," said Rudolph, shaking his head. "I am not so
much in need of money as to pay so dearly for it. Listen to me. If you
have been lucky, so have I. I have an income, safe and sure, of one
hundred and fifty pounds."

"You have!" exclaimed Tony, surprised.

"Yes."

"Do you hold any position?"

"No; I merely promise to keep my mouth shut."

"Is it about me?"

"Yes. The long and short of it is that there is an English estate,
bringing in two thousand pounds rental, that of right belongs to you."

"To me--an estate of two thousand pounds a year?" exclaimed Tony, in
astonishment.

"Yes; the party who owns it pays me an income as hush money. I have
only to say the word, and the estate will be yours, Tony."

"Say the word, Rudolph, and you shall have the same income," entreated
Tony. "It isn't the money I so much care for, but I want to know who
I am. I want to be restored to my rightful place in society. Is my
mother living?"

"No."

"Nor my father?"

"No."

Tony looked sober.

"Then I should not care so much for the money. Still it ought to be
mine."

"Of course it ought," said Rudolph, gloating over the boy's emotion.

"You shall lose nothing by telling me--by becoming my friend. I will
never refer to the past--never speak of what happened in America."

"No doubt," sneered Rudolph, "but it can't be."

"Why can't it be?"

"_Because I hate you!_" hissed the tramp, with a baleful look. "Not
another word. It's no use, I shall lock you up here for the present,
while I am out. When I come back I will let you know what I am going to
do to you."

He left the room, locking the door behind him.

Tony sat down to reflect upon the strange position in which he was
placed.




CHAPTER XXXVII.

MRS. MIDDLETON AND HER LOVER.


When Rudolph left Tony imprisoned, he began to think over the situation
with regard to his own interest.

He was already dissatisfied with the income he received from Mrs.
Middleton; though at the time it seemed to him large, he found that he
could easily spend more. He did not have expensive lodgings--in fact,
they were plain, and quite within his means, but he drank and gambled,
and both these amusements were expensive. He had already made up his
mind to ask for a larger income, and Tony's offer stimulated him to ask
at once.

"If Mrs. Middleton won't, the boy will," he said to himself.

Mrs. Middleton was in London. In fact, at that moment she was
conversing with Captain Lovell, to whom she had been formally
betrothed. He had satisfied himself that the prospects were all right,
and then had renewed his offer. The marriage was to take place in a
month, and Mrs. Middleton was in town to make suitable preparations for
it. She was perfectly happy, for she was about to marry a man she loved.

As for Captain Lovell, he was well enough contented. He did not care
much for the lady as regards love, but he was decidedly in love with
her property.

"It will make me comfortable for life," he said, with a shrug of the
shoulders, "and after marriage I can pay as little attention to Mrs.
Lovell as I choose. She must be content with marrying my name."

The widow had taken handsome apartments at a West End boarding house.
There she received callers.

Captain Lovell was lounging in an easy chair, looking rather bored. His
_fiancee_ was inspecting an array of dry goods which had been sent in
from a fancy London shop.

"Don't you think this silk elegant, Gregory!" she asked, displaying a
pattern.

"Oh, ah, yes, I suppose so," he answered with a yawn.

"I would like to have your taste, Gregory."

"I have no taste, my dear Mrs. Middleton, about such matters."

"Don't you think it will become me?"

"Why, to be sure; everything becomes you, you know."

She laughed.

"Would a yellow turban become me?" she asked.

"Well, perhaps not," he said, "but of course you know best."

"How little you men know about a lady's dress!"

"I should think so. The fact is, my dear Mrs. Middleton, that part of
my education was neglected."

"When I am your wife, Gregory, I shall always appeal to your taste."

"Will you?" he said, rather frightened. "'Pon my honor, I hope you
won't now."

"And I shall expect you to consult me about your wardrobe."

"What, about my trousers and coats? Really, that's very amusing; 'pon
my honor it is."

"Don't you think I feel an interest in how my dear Gregory is dressed?"

"I don't know, I'm sure."

"But I do, and shall I tell you why?"

"If you want to."

"Because I love you," she said softly, and she rose from her chair, and
crossing, laid her hand affectionately on his shoulder.

He shrank, just the least in the world, and felt annoyed, but didn't
like to say so. She might be angry, and though he did not love her, he
did want to marry her, and so escape from his money troubles.

"Of course, I'm ever so much obliged to you," he said, "and all that
sort of thing."

"And you love me, Gregory, don't you?" she asked, tenderly.

"Did you ever! I wish she'd stop," he said to himself. "She makes me
awful uncomfortable."

"Don't you love me, Gregory?"

"If I didn't love you, do you think I would have asked you to become
Mrs. Lovell?" he said, evading the question.

"To be sure, Gregory," she replied, trying to look satisfied.

"And now I must go; I must, 'pon my honor," he said, rising.

"You have been here so short a time," she pleaded.

"But I promised to be at the club. I'm to meet a fellow officer, and
it's the hour now."

"Then I must let you go. But you'll come again soon?"

"Yes, 'pon honor," and the captain kissed his hand to his _fiancee_.

"I wonder if he really loves me!" she said to herself, wistfully.

At this moment the servant entered.

"Please, ma'am, there's a rough-looking man below, who says he wants to
see you. His name is Rugg."

"Admit him," said Mrs. Middleton, looking annoyed.




CHAPTER XXXVIII.

A STORMY INTERVIEW.


"Why are you here Mr. Rugg?" demanded Mrs. Middleton, coolly.

"On business," said the tramp, throwing himself, uninvited upon the
same chair from which Captain Lovell had just risen.

Mrs. Middleton flushed with anger, but she did not dare to treat his
insolence as it deserved.

"What business can you have with me?" she asked, coldly.

"It's about the allowance."

"It was paid punctually, was it not?"

"Yes."

"Then you can have no business with me. Have I not told you that you
are not to call upon me at any time? My agent attends to that."

"I want the allowance raised," said Rudolph, abruptly.

"Raised?"

"Yes, you must double it."

Mrs. Middleton was now really angry.

"I never heard such insolence," she said. "You have taken your trouble
for nothing. I shall not give you a pound more."

"You'd better, Mrs. Middleton," said Rudolph, "or I may tell all I
know."

"You would only ruin yourself, and lose your entire income."

"I should ruin you, too."

"Not at all. No one would believe you against me. Besides, are you
ready to be tried for murder?"

"Who has committed murder?"

"You have."

"Prove it."

"Didn't you kill the boy?"

"No."

"You swore to me he was dead."

"Suppose he didn't die."

"You are wasting your time, Mr. Rugg," said Mrs. Middleton, coldly. "Of
course I understand your motives. You have been extravagant, and wasted
your money, hoping to get more out of me. But it is useless."

"You'll be sorry for this, ma'am," said Rugg, angrily.

"I don't think I shall. Before doing anything that _you_ will be sorry
for, consider that to a man in your position the income I give you is
very liberal."

"Liberal! It isn't one-tenth of what you get."

"Very true, but the case is different."

"You may believe me or not, but the boy is alive, and I know where he
is."

Mrs. Middleton did not believe one word of what he said. She was
convinced that Tony had been killed by the man before her, and was
indignant at the trick which she thought he was trying to play upon
her. She felt that if she yielded to his importunity, it would only be
the beginning of a series of demands. She had courage and firmness, and
she decided to discourage him once for all in his exactions.

"I don't believe you," she said, "and I am not afraid."

"Then you won't increase my income," he said.

"No, I will not. Neither now nor at any other time will I do it. What I
have agreed to do I will do, but I will not give you a penny more. Do
you understand me, Mr. Rugg?"

"I believe I do," said Rudolph, rising, "and I tell you you'll be sorry
for what you are saying."

"I will take the risk," she said, contemptuously.

Rudolph's face was distorted with passion as he left the room.

"I hate her more than the boy," he muttered. "He shall have the estate."




CHAPTER XXXIX.

TONY'S ESCAPE.


When Tony found himself left a prisoner in his enemy's room, he did
not immediately make an effort to escape, in fact, he did not feel
particularly alarmed.

"I am in a large city, and there are other lodgers in this building.
There can be no danger. I will wait awhile and think over what Rudolph
has told me. Can it be true that I am heir to a large estate in
England, and that he can restore me to it if he will? He can have no
motive for deceiving me. It must be true."

Tony felt that he would give a great deal to know more. Where was this
estate, and who now held it? It occurred to him that some where about
the room he might find some clew to the mystery. He immediately began
to explore it.

Rudolph was not a literary man. He had neither books nor papers whose
tell-tale testimony might convict him. In fact, the best of his
personal possessions was very small. A few clothes were lying about
the room. Tony decided to examine the pockets of these, in the hope of
discovering something in his interest. Finally, he found in the pocket
of a shooting coat a small memorandum book, in which a few entries,
chiefly of bets, had been made. In these Tony felt no interest, and he
was about to throw down the book, when his eye caught this entry:

"Dead broke. Must write to Mrs. Middleton for more money."

Tony's heart beat rapidly.

This must be the person from whom Rudolph received his income, and, by
consequence the person who was in fraudulent possession of the estate
that was rightfully his.

"Mrs. Middleton!"

"I wish I knew where she lives," thought our hero. "No doubt there are
hundreds of the name in England."

This might be, but probably there was but one Mrs. Middleton in the
possession of an estate worth two thousand pounds rental.

"I am on the track," thought Tony. "Now let me get away, and consult
George Spencer."

It was easier said than done. The door was locked, and it was too
strong to break down.

"There must be somebody in the room below," thought Tony. "I'll pound
till they hear me."

He jumped up and down with such force that it did attract attention in
the room below. Presently he heard a querulous voice at the key-hole:

"What's the matter? Are you mad?"

"No, but I'm locked in," said Tony. "Can't you let me out?"

"I have no key to the door, but the landlady has."

"Won't you please to ask her to let me out? I'll be ever so much
obliged."

"Stop pounding then."

"I will."

Scarcely two minutes had elapsed when a key was heard in the lock and
the door was opened.

"How came you here, sir?" asked the landlady, a short, stout
woman--suspiciously.

"The gentleman locked me in--in a joke," said Tony.

"Maybe you're a burglar," said the landlady, eyeing him doubtfully.

Tony laughed.

"Do I look like it?" he asked.

"Well, no," the landlady admitted, "but appearances are deceitful."

"Not with me, I assure you. I am really sorry to put you to so much
trouble to let me out. Won't you accept of this?" and Tony produced a
half sovereign.

"Really, sir, I see that you are quite the gentleman," said the
landlady, pocketing the piece with avidity. "Can't I do anything for
you?"

"Only, if you'll be kind enough to give this to the gentleman when he
returns."

Tony hastily wrote a line on a card, and gave it to the now complacent
dame.

Fifteen minutes after Tony's departure Rudolph returned.

He sprang up stairs only to find the room empty and the bird flown.

"What's come of the boy!" he exclaimed in dismay; "how did he get out?"

He summoned the landlady quickly.

"Do you know anything of the boy that was in my room, Mrs. Jones?"

"Yes, Mr. Rugg, I let him out. He said you locked him in in fun."

"Humph! what else did he say?"

"He left this card for you."

Rugg seized it hastily, and read with startled eyes:


     "I am at Morley's. Come and see me soon, or I will go to Mrs.
     Middleton.

     "TONY."


"Confusion? where did the boy find out?" thought the tramp. "I must do
something, or I am ruined."

It was a mystery to him how Tony had learned so much, and he naturally
concluded that he knew a good deal more. He felt that no time was to be
lost, and started at once for Morley's. Inquiring for Tony, he was at
once admitted to the presence of Tony and George Spencer.

"So you got my card!" said Tony.

"Yes. What do you know about Mrs. Middleton?" demanded Rudolph.

"That she possesses the estate that ought to be mine. That's about it,
isn't it?"

"Yes," said Rudolph, "but you can't get it without me."

"Why not?"

"I was the man that was hired to abduct you when you was a boy."

"Can you prove that?" asked Spencer.

"I can."

"Will your story be believed?"

"Yes. The tenantry will remember me. I was one of them at the time."

"Are you ready to help my young friend here to recover his rights?"
asked Spencer.

"This morning I said no. Now I say yes, if he'll do the fair thing by
me."

A conference was entered into and a bargain was finally made. Rudolph
was to receive two hundred pounds a year as a reward for his services,
if successful.

When this arrangement had been completed, an appointment was made for
the next morning; at which hour a lawyer of repute was also present.
After listening attentively to Rudolph's statement, he said, decisively:

"Your young friend has a strong case, but I advise you to see Mrs.
Middleton privately. It may not be necessary to bring the matter into
court; and this would be preferable, as it would avoid scandal."

"I put myself in your hands," said Tony, promptly.

"Mrs. Harvey Middleton is in London," said the lawyer. "I will call
this afternoon."




CHAPTER XL.

ALL'S WELL THAT ENDS WELL.


Mrs. Harvey Middleton sat in her boudoir, trying to read a novel. But
it failed to interest her. She felt uneasy, she scarcely knew why.
The evening previous she had been at the Haymarket Theatre, and had
been struck by a boy's face. Ten feet from her sat Tony, with his
friend, George Spencer. He looked wonderfully like his father, as she
remembered him, and she was startled. She did not know Tony, but Rugg's
angry warning struck her.

"Was he right? Can this be the boy I have so much reason to dread?" she
asked herself.

She was thinking of this when the servant entered the room with a card.

"C. Barry," she repeated, "wishes to see Mrs. Middleton on business of
the greatest importance."

"Ask him to come up," she said, uneasily.

It was the lawyer, as the reader may have suspected.

"Mrs. Middleton," he said, with a bow, "I must apologize for my
intrusion."

"You say your business is important," said the lady.

"It is--of the first importance."

"Explain yourself, I beg."

"I appear before you, madame, in behalf of your late husband's cousin,
Anthony Middleton, who is the heir of the estate which you hold in
trust."

It was out now, and Mrs. Middleton was at bay.

"There is no such person," she said. "The boy you refer to is dead."

"What proof have you of his decease?"

"I have the sworn statement of the man who saw him die."

"And this man's name?"

"Is Rudolph Rugg."

"I thought so. Mr. Rugg swore falsely. He is ready to contradict his
former statement."

"He has been tampered with!" exclaimed Mrs. Middleton, pale with
passion.

"That may be," said the lawyer; but he added, significantly, "Not by
us."

"The boy is an impostor," said Mrs. Middleton, hotly. "I will not
surrender the estate."

"I feel for your disappointment, madame; but I think you are hasty."

"Who will believe the statement of a common tramp?"

"_You_ relied upon it before, madame. But we have other evidence,"
continued the lawyer.

"What other evidence?"

"The striking resemblance of my young friend to the family."

"Was--was he at the Haymarket Theatre last evening?"

"He was. Did you see him?"

"I saw the boy I suppose you mean. He had a slight look like Mr.
Middleton."

"He is his image."

"Suppose--suppose this story to be true, what do you offer me?" asked
Mrs. Middleton, sullenly.

"An income of three hundred pounds from the estate," said the lawyer.
"If the matter comes to court, this Rugg, I am bound to tell you, has
an ugly story to tell, in which you are implicated."

Mrs. Middleton knew well enough what it meant. If the conspiracy should
be disclosed, she would be ostracised socially. She rapidly made up her
mind.

"Mr. Barry," she said, "I will accept your terms, on a single
condition."

"Name it, madame."

"That you will give me six weeks' undisturbed possession of the estate,
keeping this matter secret meanwhile."

"If I knew your motive, I might consent."

"I will tell you in confidence. Within that time I am to be married.
The abrupt disclosure of this matter might break off the marriage."

"May I ask the name of the bridegroom?"

"Captain Gregory Lovell."

The lawyer smiled. He knew of Captain Lovell, and owed him a grudge. He
suspected that the captain was mercenary in his wooing, and he thought
that it would be a fitting revenge to let matters go on.

"I consent, upon my own responsibility," he said.

"Thank you," said Mrs. Middleton, with real gratitude.

She would not lose the man she loved, after all.

       *       *       *       *       *       *       *

A month later the marriage of Captain Gregory Lovell, of Her Majesty's
service, and Mrs. Harvey Middleton, of Middleton Hall, was celebrated.
There was a long paragraph in the Morning "Post," and Mrs. Lovell was
happy.

When, a week later, at Paris, the gallant captain was informed of the
trick that had been played upon him, there was a terrible scene. He
cursed his wife, and threatened to leave her.

"But, Gregory, I have three hundred pounds income," she pleaded. "We
can live abroad."

"And I have sold myself for that paltry sum!" he said, bitterly.

But he concluded to make the best of a bad bargain. Between them they
had an income of five hundred pounds, and on this they made shift
abroad, where living is cheap. But the marriage was not happy. He was
brutal at times, and his wife realized sadly that he had never loved
her. But she has all the happiness she deserves, and so has he.

Rudolph drank himself to death in six months. So the income which he
was to receive made but a slight draft upon the Middleton estate.

And Tony!--no longer Tony the Tramp, but the Hon. Anthony Middleton,
of Middleton Hall--he has just completed a course at Oxford, and is
now the possessor of an education which will help fit him for the
responsibilities he is to assume. His frank, off-hand manner makes him
an immense favorite with the circle to which he now belongs. He says
little of his early history, and it is seldom thought of now. He has
made a promise to his good friend, George Spencer, to visit the United
States, and will doubtless do so. He means at that time to visit once
more the scenes with which he became familiar when he was A POOR
BOY.




WHITMARSH'S REVENGE.


Roger Blake and Belcher Whitmarsh were both called quite good boys,
but for different reasons. As their friends used sometimes to put it,
Belcher was liked _because_ of his temper, and Roger was liked _in
spite of_ his temper.

Roger was quick to fly into a passion, and as quick to get over it,
while Belcher was almost always good natured, but when once really
offended remembered the offense like an Indian.

The broad play-green in front of the country schoolhouse, where the
boys spent their term times together, was surrounded by trees and rocky
pasture lots. A pretty brook ran through it. On the sides of the brook
and in the rain-gulleys there were plenty of pebbles and small stones.

One noon, when the boys had begun a trial of skill in firing stones at
a mark, an unlucky turn was given to this small "artillery practice" by
the thoughtless challenge of one of the youngsters to a playmate:

"I stump you to hit _me_."

The stones soon began to fly promiscuously, and the play grew more
lively than safe. The boys became excited and ran in all directions,
exclaiming "Hit _me_, hit _me_!" The missiles were dodged with exultant
laughter, and the shots returned with interest.

As must be supposed, some of the players were really hit, and sore
heads, and backs, and limbs made the sham skirmish before long a good
deal like a real battle.

Belcher Whitmarsh was about the only really cool fellow on the ground.

"Come, fellows," he remonstrated, "this is getting dangerous. What's
the good of throwing stones when you're mad? It's poor play, any way."

"Ho, you're afraid," shouted Roger Blake, and in this he was joined by
several others.

Roger had received one rather hard thump, and feeling quite fiery about
it determined to be "even with somebody." He kept on hurling right and
left reckless of consequences.

Belcher paid no attention to the derision with which his words were
treated. He was preparing, with one or two companions, to leave the
playground when he saw Roger near him with a heavy stone in his hand
drawing back for a furious throw.

Partly in sport and partly out of regard for the lad aimed at, he
stepped behind the excited boy and caught his arm.

Roger whirled about instantly in a great heat. As Belcher stepped
quickly backward, laughing, he let fly the stone at him with all his
force, crying:

"Take it yourself, then!"

The stone struck Belcher full in the face, breaking two of his front
teeth and knocking him down.

Seeing what he had done, Blake sobered in an instant and ran to the aid
of his fallen schoolfellow.

"I didn't mean to, Belcher," said Roger, bending over him remorsefully,
and evidently afraid he had killed him.

The boys began to express their indignation quite loudly, but Blake
made no attempt to defend himself, only hanging over the injured lad,
and declaring how sorry he was.

"Come," pleaded he, "try to get up, and let me help you down to the
schoolhouse--I'll pay the doctor anything in the world to make you well
again."

But Whitmarsh, as soon as he recovered a little, showed that he
resented his sympathy as bitterly as he did his blow.

Pushing away his hand spitefully, he staggered to his feet with the
help of another boy, and holding his handkerchief to his bloody face
moved off the green, sobbing with pain and revengeful rage.

By the time school commenced he had been assisted to wash and bind up
his bleeding mouth, when he started for home, giving Roger a look which
was very seldom seen on his face, but which meant plainly enough:

"I'll have the worth of this out of your skin some day, see if I don't!"

That afternoon the boys received a sound lecture from the teacher on
the evil of throwing stones, and a penalty was imposed upon the leaders
in the reckless sport, Roger among them, who, however, in consideration
of his penitence, was only charged with a message to his parents,
making full confession and submitting his case entirely to their
judgment.

Days passed, and everything went on much as before at the school, save
that Belcher Whitmarsh was missed, being at home healing his wound.

Every day that his absence was noticed was to Roger's quick feelings
like a new condemnation.

No one was more pleased, then, than Roger Blake to see Belcher, after a
little more than a week had passed, back at his place in school.

He soon found, however, that bygones were not to be bygones between
them.

Belcher not only refused to respond to his hearty congratulations, but
showed by his manner and words (hissed through his broken teeth) that
so far from forgiving Roger's offense he meant to lay it up against him.

Several times when thrown in close company with him Blake tried to
disarm his dislike.

"Come," he would say, "now, Belch, shake hands and say quits."

But Whitmarsh would only answer with a surly half threat, or grin
significantly, to expose the notch in his gums where the teeth were
gone.

The boys saw this unreasonable dislike, and gradually transferred their
sympathy to Roger.

At last the school closed, and though Belcher was not cordial the
whole affair between the two lads seemed likely to be soon forgotten.

One day during vacation, as Roger was picking whortleberries with two
other boys in a lonely pasture, he was unexpectedly joined by Belcher,
who had come thither on the same errand.

It was not noticed that they greeted each other very differently from
the usual manner of boys, and during the whole time they were together
Belcher behaved himself in a way that made neither Blake nor his
companions feel any the less at ease for his company. Least of all had
they any reason to suspect that he still harbored his old revenge.

A ruined house, many years deserted, stood in sight of the spot where
the boys were picking, and growing tired of their work they agreed to
go and examine the old building, and perhaps take a game of "hi spy"
there.

As they went over the house they found a trap-door opening into
a small vault, which had evidently once been used for the family
cellar--for the ancient dwelling was rather cramped in size and
accommodations--and, boy-like, they all went down into the moldy hole.

As the last boy was descending the rotten ladder tumbled to pieces
under his weight, and the adventurous youngsters found themselves
caught like the fox and goat in the well.

Philip Granger, however, being a lad of quick resources, soon hit upon
the fox's plan of getting out, which was that each should climb the
shoulders of a comrade, and when all but one were safely above ground
these should join in pulling out the last.

The plan was varied a little in practice, as it was awkward business to
decide who of them should be the "goat."

Phil got up first, climbing over Frank Staples, and then aided his
helper out.

Belcher, who had made a ladder of Roger Blake, was performing the
pulling of his generous companion toward the opening, when a sudden
yell was heard outside, and crying out "There come Dirk Avery and Ben
Trench!" Frank and Phil darted away, running as if for their lives.

Seized with their panic, Belcher instantly dropped Roger, and
regardless of his terrified calls rushed from the hut in a twinkling.

The jar of the hurried departure of the boys over the rickety floor
brought down the trap-door with a bang, and Roger was left a prisoner
indeed.

Dirk Avery and Ben Trench were two bad characters who lived a sort of
half-vagabond life, rarely doing any honest work, and whose savage
looks and cruel natures made them the terror of all the children of the
neighborhood.

Their appearance in any place was the signal for a general stampede of
the young people who happened to be about. There was not one in our
little whortleberry party who was not as much afraid of them as if they
had actually worn horns and hoofs.

On this occasion they were out on a fishing tramp, and the contents
of a bottle of cheap rum that each of them carried had made them more
wicked than usual.

Accordingly, they were in just the mood to take all possible advantage
of the fright they had caused, and when the boys fled so precipitately
from the ruined house they pursued them with horrible threats and
shouts of hoarse laughter.

Frank and Phil ran toward the lot where they had hidden their baskets,
the loud voice of Dirk crying, "Skin the rascals! Wring their necks!"

Dirk, however, soon overdid himself, for the two boys were fleet of
foot, and saved their breath. They finally got away, with their berries.

Belcher struck a bee-line for home, forgetting his basket, and though
Ben gave him a hot chase he succeeded in distancing him.

Poor Roger! For some minutes after he found himself shut fast in the
vault his mortal fear of being found by the two roughs left him no
courage to cry out, and gave him no time to think whether he ought to
blame Belcher or not.

Judging his act by his own feelings then, he could not say but he
should have done the same.

But the immediate fright soon passed, and he began to feel the real
misery of his situation.

Nobody but Whitmarsh knew where he was. What if he _should_ leave him
there, for the old grudge? And then it came to him how singular it
was that the one on whom he depended to help him out should be just
_he_--the boy who had threatened him.

Wearily enough passed the time to Roger down there in the dismal hole.

Neither shout nor scream would help him. No one lived within half a
mile of the house; or if his cries should chance to be heard it might
be Avery and Trench, and they would certainly bring him more hurt than
good.

Suddenly he heard footsteps. A hand seized the trap-door and lifted it.
Belcher Whitmarsh's face looked into the vault.

"Hollo," said Roger joyfully, "I thought you'd be back before long. Now
let's get out of this--I've had enough of it, I'm sure."

But Belcher only grinned, showing the vacancy in his front teeth, and
replied coolly:

"Want me to help you out?"

"Of course. Don't be fooling now," pleaded Roger.

"Well," said Belcher, "I've thought it over, and seeing you're in there
so nicely _I've concluded I won't_. I've an old score against you.
Perhaps you'd like to pay it now."

With that he dropped the trap-door, and made off.

He had come after his basket of berries. Would he be heartless enough
to go home now and leave his schoolmate in that damp hole, pestilent
with mildew and haunted, perhaps, by sliding adders and loathsome
creatures?

Meantime the parents of Roger, when the hour passed at which he was
expected home, began to make inquiries for him. Frank Staples and
Philip Granger, who both supposed he had climbed out of the vault and
ran away with Belcher from the hut, were much surprised when asked
where he was, and told that he had not returned.

Their story of the encounter with Dirk Avery and Ben Trench made the
parents still more anxious.

Possibly their boy had come to some harm at the hands of those drunken
ruffians. Would Philip mind going over to the pasture again and showing
just where it all happened?

Philip gladly consented, and getting leave from home accompanied Mr.
Blake to the lot where they had gathered their berries.

Roger's basket was found untouched, precisely where he had been seen to
hide it. Mr. Blake looked pale and Phil began to feel frightened.

"Let's go down to Mr. Whitmarsh's," said Mr. Blake, "and see Belcher."

It was now about sundown, but as the old house lay not far out of the
way it was decided to visit it.

No sooner had they reached it and looked in than Phil exclaimed, "The
trap-door is shut. I'm sure 'twas open when we left it."

In a moment more they had uncovered the vault and found poor Roger.

Overjoyed, they helped him out, a good deal the worse for the hunger
and fear he had undergone.

The story of Belcher's mean revenge was soon noised abroad. He excused
himself by saying he meant to leave Roger only a little while for a
joke, but his father made him go to Mr. Blake's and apologize for his
wanton trick.

We must do Belcher the justice to say that he performed the duty
promptly and with apparent frankness and sincerity. There is no
doubt, however, that he meant harm--not such serious harm as might
have occurred--but sufficient injury to his playfellow to satisfy his
malignant feelings and glut his revenge. The spirit he exhibited was
the same in kind, although not in degree, as that which makes a man a
murderer.

A true man never allows anger to get the permanent control of his
feelings. He knows its mean and dangerous tendencies, and remembers the
words of Him who spake as never man spake: "If ye forgive not men their
trespasses, neither will your Father forgive your trespasses."




THE BOY IN THE BUSH.


"The impudent scoundrel! Just look at this, mamma. I should like to see
him at it," exclaimed Sydney Lawson in great wrath, as he handed his
mother a very dirty note which a shepherd had brought home. On coarse,
crumpled grocer's paper these words were written in pencil:


     "Master Sidney i Want your Mare the chesnit with the white starr,
     soe You Send her to 3 Mile flat first thing Tomorrer Or i Shall
     Have to cum an Fetch Her.

     "WARRIGAL."


"Sam says," Sydney went on to say, "that the fellow was coward enough
to give it him just down by the slip-panels. He wouldn't have dared to
talk about sticking us up if he hadn't known father was away. Send him
my mare Venus! I seem to see myself doing it!"

Sidney Lawson, who made this indignant speech, was a tall, slim lad
of fourteen. He and his mother had been left in charge of the station
while his father took some cattle to Port Philip.

Sydney was very proud of his charge; he thought himself a man now, and
was very angry that Warrigal, a well-known desperado, should think he
could be frightened "like a baby."

Warrigal was a bushranger who with one or two companions wandered about
in that part of New South Wales, doing pretty much as he liked. They
stopped the mail, and robbed draymen and horsemen on the road by the
two and three dozen together. The police couldn't get hold of them.

The note that Sydney had received caused a great deal of excitement in
the little station.

Miss Smith, who helped Mrs. Lawson in the house, and taught Sydney's
sisters and his brother Harry, was in a great fright.

"Oh! pray send him the horse, Master Sydney," she cried, "or we
shall all be murdered. You've got so many horses one can't make any
difference."

Mrs. Lawson was as little disposed as Sydney to let Mr. Warrigal do
as he liked. She knew that her husband would have run the risk of
being "nabbed," if he had been at home, rather than have obeyed the
bushranger's orders; and that he would be very pleased if they could
manage to defy the rascal.

Still it was a serious matter to provoke Messrs. Warrigal & Co. to pay
the house a visit. She felt sure that Sydney would fight and she meant
to fire at the robbers herself if they came; but would she and Sydney
be able to stand against three armed men?

Not a shepherd, or stockman, or horse-breaker about the place was to
be depended on; and Ki Li, the Chinaman cook, though a very good kind
of fellow, would certainly go to bed in his hut if the robbers came
by day, and stay in bed if the robbers came by night. John Jones, the
plowman, whose wife was Mrs. Lawson's servant, slept in the house, and
he was too honest to band with the bushrangers in any way; "but then,
he's such a _sheep_, you know, mamma," said Sydney.

There was time to send word to the police in Jerry's Town; but who was
to go?

Ki Li would be afraid to go out in the dark, and John Jones would be
afraid to ride anything but one of the plow horses, and that only at an
amble. It wouldn't do for Sydney to leave the place, since he was the
only male on it who was to be depended upon, so what was to be done?

Little Harry had heard his mother and brother talking; and as soon as
he made out their difficulty he looked up and said:

"Why, mamma, _I_ can go. Syd, lend me your stock-whip and let me have
Guardsman."

Neither mother nor brother had any fear about Harry's horsemanship, but
they scarcely liked to turn the little fellow out for a long ride by
night.

However, he knew the way well enough, and if he did not fall in with
any of the Warrigal gang nobody would harm him.

So Sydney put the saddle and bridle on Guardsman and brought him
round to the garden-gate, where Harry stood flicking about Sydney's
stock-whip very impatiently, while his mamma kissed him and tied a
comforter round his neck.

Harry shouted "Good-night," gave Guardsman his head, and was off like a
wild boy.

Sydney stabled Venus, his favorite mare, and--an unusual
precaution--turned the key in the rusty padlock; and when he had given
a look about the outbuildings it was time for him to go in to supper
and family prayers.

He read the chapter and Mrs. Lawson read the prayers. She was a brave
woman, but with her little girls about her and her little boy away she
couldn't keep her voice from trembling a little when she said, "Lighten
our darkness, we beseech thee, O Lord; and by Thy great mercy defend us
from all perils and dangers of this night."

Sydney went into his mother's bedroom and looked at the blunderbuss
that stood by the bedhead (Mrs. Lawson had selected the blunderbuss as
her weapon, because she thought she "must be sure to hit with that big
thing") and he showed her once more how to pull the trigger.

Then he bade her "good-night," and went along the veranda to his own
little room at one end, where he locked himself in, and drew the charge
of his rifle and loaded it again, and looked at the chambers of his
revolver, and put the caps on, and laid it down on a chair, ready to
his hand.

When his preparations were completed he said his prayers and tumbled
into bed with his clothes on.

Harry wasn't expected home until the next day. He had been told to
sleep at the tavern in Jerry's Town, when he had left his message at
the barracks, and come home at his leisure in the morning.

About four miles from Wonga-Wonga, the dreariest part of the road to
Jerry's Town, begins a two-mile stretch of dismal scrub. Harry put his
heels into Guardsman's sides to make him go even faster than he was
going when they got into the scrub, and was pleased to hear a horse's
hoofs coming toward him from the other end.

He thought it was a neighbor riding home to the next station; but it
was Warrigal. As soon as Harry pulled up Guardsman to chat a minute,
Warrigal laid hold of the bridle and pulled Harry on to the saddle
before him.

"Let's see, you're one of the Wonga-Wonga" (that was the name of his
father's station) "kids, ain't you?" said the robber. "And where are
you off to this time of night? Oh, oh, to fetch the traps, I guess; but
I'll put a stop to that little game."

Just then Harry gave a _coo-ey_. He couldn't give a very loud one, for
he was lying on a sack on the robber's horse; but it made Warrigal very
savage.

He put the cold muzzle of a pistol against Harry's face and said, "You
screech again, youngster, and you won't do it no more."

And then Warrigal took Harry and the horses into the scrub, and gagged
Harry with a bit of iron he took out of his pocket, and tied him up to
a crooked old honeysuckle-tree with a long piece of rope he carried in
his saddle-bags.

"Don't frighten yourself, I'll tell yer mar where you are, and you'll
be back by breakfast," said Warrigal, as he got on Guardsman and rode
off, driving his own tired horse before him.

Next morning, just as the day was breaking, Warrigal and his two mates,
with crape masks on, rode up to Wonga-Wonga.

They made as little noise as they could; but the dogs began to bark and
woke Sydney.

When he woke, however, Warrigal had got his little window open, and was
covering him with a pistol.

Sydney put out his hand for his revolver, and though Warrigal shouted,
"Throw up your hands, boy, or I'll shoot you through the head," he
jumped out of bed and fired.

He missed Warrigal, and Warrigal missed him; but Warrigal's bullet
knocked Sydney's revolver out of his hand, and one of Warrigal's
mates made a butt against the bedroom door and smashed it; and he and
Warrigal rushed into the room, and threw Sydney down on the bed, and
pinioned his arms with a sheet.

The other bushranger was watching the horses.

By this time the whole station was aroused. The men peeped out of their
huts, half frightened, half amused; not one of them came near the
house. John Jones and his wife piled their boxes against their room
door, and then crept under the bed.

Miss Smith went into hysterics; and Gertrude and her sisters couldn't
help looking as white as their night-dresses.

Mrs. Lawson had fired off her blunderbuss, but it had only broken
two panes of the parlor window, and riddled the veranda posts; so
Wonga-Wonga was at the bushrangers' mercy.

They ransacked the house, and took possession of any little plate, and
jewelry, and other portable property they could find. When the robbers
had packed up what they called the "swag," and put it on one of their
horses, they pulled Ki Li out of bed, and made him light a fire, and
cook some chops and boil some tea.

Then they marched Mrs. Lawson, and Miss Smith, and Sydney, and his
sisters, and Mr. and Mrs. Jones, and Ki Li, into the keeping-room, and
sat down to breakfast, with pistols in their belts, and pistols laid,
like knives and forks, on the table.

The bushrangers tried to be funny, and pressed Mrs. Lawson and the
other ladies to make themselves at home, and take a good meal. One of
the robbers was going to kiss Miss Smith; but Sydney, pinioned as he
was, ran at him, and butted him like a ram.

He was going to strike Sydney; but Gertrude ran between them, calling
out, "Oh, you great coward!" and Warrigal felt ashamed, and told the
man to sit down.

"We call him Politeful Bill," Warrigal remarked, in apology; "but he
ain't much used to ladies' serciety."

When breakfast was over, Warrigal asked Sydney where the mare was.

"Find her yourself," said Sydney.

"Well, there won't be much trouble about that," answered Warrigal.
"She's in the stable, I know; and you've locked her in, for I tried
the door. I suppose you are too game to give up the key, my young
fighting-cock? But since you're so sarcy, Master Sydney, you shall see
me take your mare. You might as well ha' sent her instead of sending
for the police, and then I shouldn't ha' got the bay horse too;" and he
pointed to Guardsman, hung up on the veranda.

There was no time to ask what had become of Harry.

Warrigal hurried Sydney by the collar to the stable, while the other
men mounted their horses, and unhooked Guardsman, to be ready for their
captain.

Warrigal blew off the padlock with his pistol; but Venus was fractious,
and wouldn't let him put on her halter. While he was dodging about the
stable with her, Sydney heard hoofs in the distance. Nearer and nearer
came the _tan-ta-ta-tan-ta-ta-tan-ta-ta_.

Four bluecoats galloped up to the slip-panels, three troopers and a
sergeant; the sergeant with Harry on his saddlebow.

In a second Harry was down, and in three seconds the slip-panels were
down too.

The waiting bushrangers saw the morning sun gleaming on their carbines,
as the police dashed between the aloes and the prickly pears, and
letting Guardsman go, were off like a shot.

Sydney banged to the stable door; and, setting his back against it,
shouted for help. His mother, Gertrude, and even John Jones, as the
police were close at hand, ran to his aid; and up galloped the troopers.

Warrigal fired a bullet or two through the door, and talked very big
about not being taken alive; but he thought better of it, and in an
hour's time he was jogging off to Jerry's Town with handcuffs on, and
his legs tied under his horse's belly.

If Warrigal had not taken up little Harry, most likely he would not
have been caught; for when Harry had got to Jerry's Town, he would have
found all the troopers away except one. In the scrub, however, Harry
heard the sergeant and his men returning from a wild-goose chase they
had been sent on by the bush telegraphs; and managing at last to spit
the gag out of his mouth, he had given a great _co-oo-oo-oo-oo-ey_.

After that night Miss Smith always called Sydney _Mr._ Sydney; and
Sydney let Harry ride Venus as often as he liked.




THE MIDNIGHT RIDE.


It was half-a-dozen years before the war that Godfrey Brooks made a
visit to his Cousin Sydney in Virginia. It was his first glimpse of
plantation life, and he was not sparing of his questions or comments.
Boys in a strange place find it hard to carry about with them the
politeness or reticence which are such easy fitting garments at home.

The two boys were standing on the piazza one sunny morning looking down
to the distant swamp.

"You mean to tell me," said Godfrey hotly, "that gentlemen hunted their
runaway slaves out of the swamp with bloodhounds? Bloodhounds?"

"No, I don't. Gentlemen, of course, do no such dirty work. In the
first place, our people (we don't call them slaves) never run away.
Why, bless you, old Uncle Peter there, was a boy with my grandfather,
and I'm sure I like him a deal better. Of all the hundreds of men and
women my father owns, there's not one that don't respect and love him.
But there's a class of whites who are not so respected, and when their
people escape they bring them back--that's all."

"It's brutal," muttered Godfrey.

"A man has a right to reclaim his property," said Syd coolly.

Now neither of the boys knew much of the intrinsic merits of the
question. They only echoed the words and arguments their elders threw
back and forth unceasingly. When Syd began to give the details of
the late hunt after a runaway horse-thief in the swamp, therefore,
Godfrey's moral indignation cooled in the borrowed ardor of the chase.

"You see," Syd said in conclusion, "Boosey was really a criminal of
the worst sort, as well as a slave, and he belonged to old Johnson.
Johnson's the man that owns the hounds. That's his place beyond the
hill. He's a whiskey distiller, and raises slaves for the market. Oh,
of course he's tabooed. Even a decent laborer looks down on a man that
raises slaves for the market."

The boys went out fishing presently, and Godfrey looked with a thrill
of horror into the dark thicket of laurel and poisonous ivy as they
passed where Boosey was still hidden. Down in his secret soul there
was an idea of the fierce and terrible zest of hunting anything--even
a man--with a bloodhound, through that tragic dusk and quagmire. It
would be akin to the gladiatorial combats between man and beast of old
Rome, or the bull-fights of the plaza, which his gentle Cousin Anne had
learned to relish in Madrid.

"What do you say to riding over to Col. Page's to-night?" said Syd at
supper. "The girls want to practice some new music before the next
party. It's only six now. We can ride over in an hour."

"All right," said Godfrey.

"Remember, boys," said Dr. Brooks, "you are to be at home and in bed by
ten." For Syd's father, while he bestowed horses, guns, every accessory
to pleasure upon his son with an unstinting hand, yet held a tight rein
on him and never allowed him to fancy that he was a man and not in
reality a child.

"We'll be home by ten, sir," the boys said promptly.

Now Godfrey was but a schoolboy, and at home only snubbed and kept
in place by a half-dozen grown brothers and sisters. This riding out
at night, therefore, on a pony, which for the time was his own; this
calling on young ladies to whom he was known as Mr. Brooks, of New
York, was an ecstatic taste of adult freedom which almost intoxicated
the boy. When nine o'clock came, and Syd beckoned him from the sofa,
where he was reading "Locksley Hall" to Miss Amelia Page, he rose so
unwillingly as to cause Joe Page to look from his game of backgammon.

"It's too bad in the doctor to put your cousin into strict prison
regulations, Syd," he said. "I'll go, however, and see about your
horses."

He came back with a queer twinkle in his eye. "Sam declares he hitched
them securely; but they're gone now. Sit down, boys, sit down. You may
as well make the best of it. The fellows are after them. They'll be
here by and by."

Syd looked annoyed. "I believe Joe unhitched them, himself. I promised
father I'd be back early." However he sat down quietly and waited.
Godfrey had no annoyance to hide.

It wanted but ten minutes to eleven o'clock that night when the ponies
were brought to the door, and the boys, after many hand-shakings and
cordial invitations, were allowed to depart for home.

Then the glow of gallantry and manhood began to cool in Godfrey's
bosom, and the unpleasant tremor to take its place which was wont to
overcome him when he was late at school.

"I say, Syd, I wish we were at home," he said, mounting.

"I wish we were," gloomily.

"Will your father be very angry?"

"It isn't that. But I never broke my word to him before, never. I know
what he thinks of a man that breaks his word. The road is heavy. It's a
good ride for an hour and a half," shutting his watch with a snap.

"Is there no short cut?"

"Yes, there's one," looking at him dubiously; "but it's through
Johnson's place."

"The dogs--they're not loose, eh?"

"That I don't know. He keeps them chained in daytime, of course, but
whether the scoundrel looses them at night or not I never heard. It
would be just like him."

The boys rode on in silence. Suddenly Syd drew up with a jerk. "Here's
the gate into Johnson's, and I tell you what it is I must go this way,
dogs or no dogs. I'm in honor bound to try to keep my promise as nearly
as I can, no matter what lies in the way. You can ride down the hill;
I'll wait for you at the house."

"No, sir; I'm with you," feeling himself every inch a man at the
chance of an adventure. "Open the gate, Syd. Now come on!" and giving
their horses the rein they struck into a gallop down the road leading
close by Johnson's house and stables. It was so heavily covered with
tan-bark that the sound of the hoofs was deadened, and the boys spoke
in whispers, afraid to stir the midnight silence.

Syd nodded toward a low kennel, back of the stables.

"There!" he motioned with his lips. "There's where they were when they
took them to hunt Boosey."

But kennel and stables were silent and motionless in the cold moonlight.

The tan-bark was replaced by pebbles near the house. The boys took
their ponies up on the short velvet turf, on which their swift feet
fell with a crisp, soft thud, a noise hardly sufficient to rouse the
most watchful dog, but which drove the blood from Godfrey's cheeks. His
short-lived courage had oozed out.

"A man one could fight," he thought. "But to be throttled like a beast
by a dog." The gladiatorial fights of Rome did not thrill him so much
now as the thought of them had sometimes done.

Thud--thud. Every beat of the hoofs upon the grass sounded through the
boys' brains. They were up to the kennels--past them--safe. Two minutes
passed and not a sound. Godfrey drew a long breath, when--hark!

A long, deep bay, like thunder, sounded through the night.

"God save us! They're loose and are after us," gasped Syd.

Glancing back they saw two enormous black shapes darting from behind
the shadow of the porch, and coming down the slope behind them.

"Now, Pitch and Tar!" sang out Syd, "it all rests on you." He shouted
as cheerily, Godfrey thought, as though he were chasing a hare. Chasing
and being chased were different matters, both the boys thought; though
there was a reckless, gay defiance about the Southern boy which his
cousin lacked, courageous as he was.

The ponies seemed to catch the meaning of Syd's call. They looked back.
Their feet scarcely touched the sward, their nostrils were red, their
eyes distended.

After the first fierce howl the dogs followed in silence. They had no
time to give tongue; they had work to do.

A long stretch of pebbly road lay before the boys, then there was a
thick patch of bushes, and beyond, the gate.

There was no doubt of the horses keeping up their pace. Terror served
them for muscle and blood. But the hounds were swifter of foot at any
time. They gained with every minute. The distance was about fifty yards.

"Can we do it?" Godfrey asked. His tongue was hot and parched.

"Of course we'll do it, unless the gate is locked."

After this new dread came they were silent. Godfrey thought of home,
his mother, and poor little Nell; wished he had not snubbed her as he
used to do.

Syd felt desperately in his pockets, where he found only a penknife.
Why would not his father let him carry firearms as the other boys?

Suddenly turning to Godfrey he made a gesture, and turned his horse
full on the hedge of privet. It leaped boldly--Godfrey's followed. But
the hounds followed, relentless as fate, and dashed through the lower
branches. They were closer than before.

"The gate! the gate!" cried Syd. He had reached it and fumbled for the
bolt. Godfrey, a dozen paces behind, fancied he felt the tramp of the
powerful beasts shake the ground. He turned, saw them coming with open
jaws, closer, closer.

Would the gate never open? There was a creak and crash, and it rolled
back on its rusty hinges. The horses darted through so violently as to
throw Godfrey on the ground. When he looked up Syd was standing beside
him, and from the other side of the iron bars came the baffled roar of
the angry beasts.

The boys rode home without a word.

"What about reclaiming property by means of bloodhounds, Syd?" asked
Godfrey.

"It's brutal," cried Syd vehemently, and then he laughed. "I tell you,
Godfrey, one must actually take another man's place before he can be
quite just to him, eh?"




A THOUSAND A YEAR.


"I am afraid Daniel must give up his studies," Mrs. Brooks said, sadly.
"I've been thinking how we are to meet the expenses of another year,
and it seems quite impossible to get money enough to do so."

"Oh, it would be such a pity, and brother so nearly through," Susan
said, looking up in a distressed way. "He mustn't leave college now,
when he is so near graduating! There _must_ be a way of helping him
through."

Mrs. Brooks stooped to kiss the pale, tender face upturned to hers.

"You have a wise little head, Susan, but I am afraid there is a problem
here you cannot solve," said the widow, mournfully.

"How much will be needed?"

"At least a hundred dollars besides what he will earn himself. You know
there are always extra expenses for the graduating class."

Susan's countenance fell. It was a great sum in her estimation, and it
was already difficult for them to meet their weekly expenses.

"Everything depends upon brother's success," Susan said, presently.
"We must give up everything for him."

"I cannot forget I have _two_ children," the mother said, kissing the
girl again more tenderly than before.

"Two children; but only one that will be a blessing to you," Susan
said, brushing away a tear.

"Don't say that, Susie. I am proud of Daniel, I do not deny that--but I
love you, too, all the same."

"But you never can be proud of me, weak and deformed as I am! Oh,
mother, why are some flowers made so beautiful and fragrant, and some
so dark and noisome? Why was my brother so fair, so talented, and I so
repulsive?"

"No, no, no, not repulsive; don't say that," the widow cried, putting
her arms around the girl in a sheltering way.

"Do you think Daniel will let me go to see him take his diploma,
mother?"

"You would not be able, dear."

The girl laughed bitterly.

"No; brother would say I was not able, too. But I should be glad, so
very glad to see him graduate. I think I would be willing to die then."

"Hush, my darling," the mother cried, with a sharp pain in her voice.
"When you are gone I shall soon follow. Daniel will be satisfied with
his laurels, but women--ah, my child--women must love something, and
you are all that is left me to love."

Susan nestled her head in her mother's bosom without speaking, and lay
there so long that her mother thought she was sleeping. Suddenly she
opened her eyes and said:

"I have thought it all out, mother. Daniel can graduate, and we will go
see him take his diploma. Mr. Green needs girls to braid straw hats.
You know I am nimble with my fingers, and I could braid a thousand a
year, and that would be how much?"

"But it would be wicked for me to allow you to overtask yourself in
that way, darling. I am not sure but it might ruin your health, feeble
as you are. No, no, it is not to be thought of."

"How many might I undertake, mother?"

"Not half that amount; not a third, even."

"Would Daniel be willing for me to braid, do you think?"

"I don't know. We will ask him."

"Mother," Susan said, looking into her eyes, "I believe this is my
mission, to educate Daniel. You know we have given him everything--my
portion of the property and yours. I think I could hold out to do this
last, and you will consent when you come to reflect upon what it will
be to brother, and to you, when I am gone. But he must not know it. It
would wound his pride, and he would get some false notion in his head
that he could not use money I had earned in that way. Now, promise me,
that let what will come, you will never tell him that I braided straw
hats that he might complete his education."

"I cannot promise _never_ to tell him, darling, because I cannot
foresee the future, but I should not like him to be humbled and
wounded, more than yourself. I am too old to learn readily, but perhaps
I, too, could earn something by braiding."

The determination was now fully settled in the mind of each, that the
young man must graduate, and that the bills must be met by them. The
patronage of Mr. Green was solicited, and it was agreed the work should
be taken home, and that a thousand hats should be braided for ten cents
each, which he assured them was more than he would think of paying to
any one else, and only to Susan in consideration of her infirmity.

We ought, perhaps, to explain that Susan had been early afflicted with
a curvature of the spine, which had sadly deformed her. She would never
have been a beautiful girl, Daniel having inherited not only all the
family talent, but its beauty as well. But her eyes were wondrously
attractive, with their loving, yearning persuasiveness, and few could
remember her deformity who had felt the warmth of her generous nature.

In due time, the anticipated letter of inquiry came from Daniel,
asking what the prospects were for the coming year. It was full of
dismal forebodings and egotistical complaints of the hard fortune that
made him dependent upon his mother, but there was no regret that she
suffered too; no longing to be a man that he might take this lonely
couple in his strong arms and bear them tenderly over the rough places
of life; only vague, ambitious dreamings of what he was to be to the
world, and the world to him.

The widow laid down the letter with a sigh. Susan read the pages over
and over again. So grounded was she in her love for this earthly idol
that the selfishness was less apparent to her than to her mother.

Its sadness seemed like tenderness, and he could not speak too often
or too much of the genius which she believed he possessed, and which
would some time break upon the world like the meteor to which he rather
tritely compared himself.

"Ah, we shall be so proud of him!" Susan said, folding the letter and
laying it away near her heart, where it rested many and many a day,
while she wove the strands of straw in and out, thinking how ten times
ten made one dollar, and how the dollars would some time count up to a
hundred, and that sum, which her fingers had wrought out, would save
her brother from discouragement, if not from despair.

The first twenty-five dollars was earned, and the money was sent the
brother.

"He was very glad of it," he said. "He had begun to fear lest they
would fail him." There was no inquiry how it had been obtained;
no solicitude lest those who loved him had deprived themselves of
luxuries, perhaps necessities, to meet his demands.

The next twenty-five dollars was earned, with greater difficulty. The
widow was awkward at braiding, and her work unsatisfactory, and so
some of it was returned to Susan. She sat up later nights, that her
mother should not see how hard the work pressed upon her; but the
twenty-five dollars came at last, and was sent to the student. Then
there was another letter of thanks.

"If you would but rest, darling," the mother would say, when some look
more wan than another startled her into keener anxiety.

"When it is done we will rest together," was all the reply the
solicitude brought.

It was too late to retract now, the mother thought; and Daniel so
nearly through! So they pinched a little from their daily meals, a
little from the store of candles, a little from the evening fire, and
prayed that every penny might be multiplied like the widow's meal.

One night Mrs. Brooks had gone to bed exhausted and hysterical with
overlabor. Susan pressed the blankets tenderly around her mother's
shoulders, and having given her the good-night kiss, and quieted her
with many promises of soon following her, she went back to the kitchen
fire and resumed the weary braiding.

She had not completed her usual task that week, and the idea occurred
to her that her mother having fallen asleep, she could braid another
hat before retiring. So she set up new strands and the thin fingers
wove them patiently in and out, until sharp pain clutched her with
merciless teeth, and she leaned forward, her head falling upon the
table, in a dead faint.

It was long past midnight when Susan found herself in this position.
Shivering with cold, she crept to her mother's side and lay the
remainder of the night, racked by alternate fevers and chills.

How could the poor child tell her mother of what she knew was creeping
so steadily toward her? Would she make a final effort to save her own
life and let Daniel struggle with his fortunes as he best could?

Poor, brave little heart, with the chill of the grave stealing over
it, but warmed back into life and renewed suffering by the wonderful
strength of its undying love!

Another twenty five dollars was forwarded to Daniel, and a few lines
came flying back by the return post, for Daniel was a man of business
habits, and punctual in all things.

Susan looked it all over carefully for some loving message to her; some
sign answering to what she felt in her own heart toward him, but there
was nothing there but "_With love to Susan, I remain, etc., Daniel._"

A dry sob escaped the poor child as she laid it by, and took up the
weary, rustling braids. The sound rasped upon her nerves now. The very
odor of the strands nauseated her. Every kink in the braids fretted
her; and when one hat was finished and laid aside, it seemed such a
mountainous task to commence another.

Sometimes hours would pass by without a round being accomplished, then
again the nimble fingers would be inspired, and the work would grow as
of old.

"If I could only go and see Daniel take his diploma," she would say,
"I think it would make me strong again. I would wear my white muslin
frock, with the blue sash, and he would not be ashamed of me."

But it was not to be. The one thousand hats were braided, and Susan's
task was done. Nothing remained for her but to lie down in her modest
casket and sleep with folded hands until the blessed Saviour shall bid
her approach to receive His welcome--"Well done, thou good and faithful
servant."

Daniel returned with his collegiate honors only to listen to the sad
story of her labors and death. His mother told it as they stood by the
coffin. There were the worn letters she had cherished, blistered all
over with tears.

He was conscience stricken when he looked them over, and saw how cold
and egotistical they were, and how thoughtless he had always been of
the treasure that death had taken. He took the thin hands in his--the
hands that had braided and plaited while he slept, and wrought out
the treasure-trove that molded the key to his success, and he made
solemn resolutions for the future. Let us hope that, in her broken
life, he learned how beautiful in the sight of God and angels is the
self-sacrifice of the lowly in heart: and how much better it is to
die in the struggle to bless others than it is to live to a selfish,
unloving, unsanctified old age.


THE END.




A. L. BURT'S PUBLICATIONS For Young People BY POPULAR WRITERS.
97-99-101 Reade Street, New York.


     +Bonnie Prince Charlie+: A Tale of Fontenoy and Culloden.
     By G. A. HENTY. With 12 full-page Illustrations by
     GORDON BROWNE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The adventures of the son of a Scotch officer in French service. The
boy, brought up by a Glasgow bailie, is arrested for aiding a Jacobite
agent, escapes, is wrecked on the French coast, reaches Paris, and
serves with the French army at Dettingen. He kills his father's foe
in a duel, and escaping to the coast, shares the adventures of Prince
Charlie, but finally settles happily in Scotland.

     "Ronald, the hero, is very like the hero of 'Quentin Durward.'
     The lad's journey across France, and his hairbreadth escapes,
     make up as good a narrative of the kind as we have ever read.
     For freshness of treatment and variety of incident Mr. Henty has
     surpassed himself."--_Spectator._


     +With Clive in India+; or, the Beginnings of an Empire.
     By G. A. HENTY. With 12 full-page Illustrations by
     GORDON BROWNE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The period between the landing of Clive as a young writer in India and
the close of his career was critical and eventful in the extreme. At
its commencement the English were traders existing on sufferance of
the native princes. At its close they were masters of Bengal and of
the greater part of Southern India. The author has given a full and
accurate account of the events of that stirring time, and battles and
sieges follow each other in rapid succession, while he combines with
his narrative a tale of daring and adventure, which gives a lifelike
interest to the volume.

     "He has taken a period of Indian history of the most vital
     importance, and he has embroidered on the historical facts a story
     which of itself is deeply interesting. Young people assuredly will
     be delighted with the volume."--_Scotsman._


     +The Lion of the North+: A Tale of Gustavus Adolphus and the Wars
     of Religion. By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by
     JOHN SCHÖNBERG. 12 mo, cloth, price $1.00.

In this story Mr. Henty gives the history of the first part of the
Thirty Years' War. The issue had its importance, which has extended
to the present day, as it established religious freedom in Germany.
The army of the chivalrous king of Sweden was largely composed of
Scotchmen, and among these was the hero of the story.

     "The tale is a clever and instructive piece of history, and as
     boys may be trusted to read it conscientiously, they can hardly
     fail to be profited."--_Times._


     +The Dragon and the Raven+; or, The Days of King Alfred. By G.
     A. Henty. With full-page Illustrations by _C. J. Staniland, R.I._
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

In this story the author gives an a count of the fierce struggle
between Saxon and Dane for supremacy in England, and presents a vivid
picture of the misery and ruin to which the country was reduced by the
ravages of the sea-wolves. The hero, a young Saxon thane, takes part
in all the battles fought by King Alfred. He is driven from his home,
takes to the sea and resists the Danes on their own element, and being
pursued by them up the Seine, is present at the long and desperate
siege of Paris.

     "Treated in a manner most attractive to the boyish
     reader."--_Athenæum._


     +The Young Carthaginian+: A Story of the Times of Hannibal.
     By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by C. J.
     STANILAND, R.I. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Boys reading the history of the Punic Wars have seldom a keen
appreciation of the merits of the contest. That it was at first a
struggle for empire, and afterward for existence on the part of
Carthage, that Hannibal was a great and skillful general, that he
defeated the Romans at Trebia, Lake Trasimenus, and Cannæ, and all but
took Rome, represents pretty nearly the sum total of their knowledge.
To let them know more about this momentous struggle for the empire of
the world Mr. Henty has written this story, which not only gives in
graphic style a brilliant description of a most interesting period
of history, but is a tale of exciting adventure sure to secure the
interest of the reader.

     "Well constructed and vividly told. From first to last nothing
     stays the interest of the narrative. It bears us along as on a
     stream whose current varies in direction, but never loses its
     force."--_Saturday Review._


     +In Freedom's Cause+: A Story of Wallace and Bruce. By
     G. A. HENTY. With full page Illustrations by GORDON
     BROWNE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

In this story the author relates the stirring tale of the Scottish
War of Independence. The extraordinary valor and personal prowess of
Wallace and Bruce rival the deeds of the mythical heroes of chivalry,
and indeed at one time Wallace was ranked with these legendary
personages. The researches of modern historians have shown, however,
that he was a living, breathing man--and a valiant champion. The
hero of the tale fought under both Wallace and Bruce, and while the
strictest historical accuracy has been maintained with respect to
public events, the work is full of "hairbreadth 'scapes" and wild
adventure.

     "It is written in the author's best style. Full of the wildest
     and most remarkable achievements, it is a tale of great interest,
     which a boy, once he has begun it, will not willingly put on one
     side."--_The Schoolmaster._


     +With Lee in Virginia+: A Story of the American Civil War.
     By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The story of a young Virginian planter, who, after bravely proving his
sympathy with the slaves of brutal masters, serves with no less courage
and enthusiasm under Lee and Jackson through the most exciting events
of the struggle. He has many hairbreadth escapes, is several times
wounded and twice taken prisoner; but his courage and readiness and, in
two cases, the devotion of a black servant and of a runaway slave whom
he had assisted, bring him safely through all difficulties.

     "One of the best stories for lads which Mr. Henty has yet
     written. The picture is full of life and color, and the stirring
     and romantic incidents are skillfully blended with the personal
     interest and charm of the story."--_Standard._


     +By England's Aid+; or, The Freeing of the Netherlands
     (1585-1604). By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations
     by ALFRED PEARSE, and Maps. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The story of two English lads who go to Holland as pages in the service
of one of "the fighting Veres." After many adventures by sea and land,
one of the lads finds himself on board a Spanish ship at the time of
the defeat of the Armada, and escapes only to fall into the hands of
the Corsairs. He is successful in getting back to Spain under the
protection of a wealthy merchant, and regains his native country after
the capture of Cadiz.

     "It is an admirable book for youngsters. It overflows with
     stirring incident and exciting adventure, and the color of the era
     and of the scene are finely reproduced. The illustrations add to
     its attractiveness."--_Boston Gazette._


     +By Right of Conquest+; or, With Cortez in Mexico. By
     G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by W. S.
     STACEY, and Two Maps. 12mo, cloth, price $1.50.

The conquest of Mexico by a small band of resolute men under the
magnificent leadership of Cortez is always rightly ranked among the
most romantic and daring exploits in history. With, this as the ground
work of his story Mr. Henty has interwoven the adventures of an English
youth, Roger Hawkshaw, the sole survivor of the good ship Swan, which
had sailed from a Devon port to challenge the mercantile supremacy
of the Spaniards in the New World. He is beset by many perils among
the natives, but is saved by his own judgment and strength, and by
the devotion of an Aztec princess. At last by a ruse he obtains the
protection of the Spaniards, and after the fall of Mexico he succeeds
in regaining his native shore, with a fortune and a charming Aztec
bride.

     "'By Right of Conquest' is the nearest approach to a
     perfectly successful historical tale that Mr. Henty has yet
     published."--_Academy._


     +In the Reign of Terror+: The Adventures of a Westminster
     Boy. By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by J. SCHÖNBERG.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Harry Sandwith, a Westminster boy, becomes a resident at the chateau
of a French marquis, and after various adventures accompanies the
family to Paris at the crisis of the Revolution. Imprisonment and death
reduce their number, and the hero finds himself beset by perils with
the three young daughters of the house in his charge. After hairbreadth
escapes they reach Nantes. There the girls are condemned to death in
the coffin-ships, but are saved by the unfailing courage of their boy
protector.

     "Harry Sandwith, the Westminster boy, may fairly be said to beat
     Mr. Henry's record. His adventures will delight boys by the
     audacity and peril they depict.... The story is one of Mr. Henty's
     best."--_Saturday Review._


     +With Wolfe in Canada+; or, The Winning of a Continent. By
     G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

In the present volume Mr. Henty gives an account of the struggle
between Britain and France for supremacy in the North American
continent. On the issue of this war depended not only the destinies
of North America, but to a large extent those of the mother countries
themselves. The fall of Quebec decided that the Anglo-Saxon race should
predominate in the New World; that Britain, and not France, should take
the lead among the nations of Europe; and that English and American
commerce, the English language, and English literature, should spread
right round the globe.

     "It is not only a lesson in history as instructively as
     it is graphically told, but also a deeply interesting and
     often thrilling tale of adventure and peril by flood and
     field."--_Illustrated London News._


     +True to the Old Flag+: A Tale of the American War
     of Independence. By G. A. HENTY. With full-page
     Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

In this story the author has gone to the accounts of officers who
took part in the conflict, and lads will find that in no war in which
American and British soldiers have been engaged did they behave with
greater courage and good conduct. The historical portion of the book
being accompanied with numerous thrilling adventures with the redskins
on the shores of Lake Huron, a story of exciting interest is interwoven
with the general narrative and carried through the book.

     "Does justice to the pluck and determination of the British
     soldiers during the unfortunate struggle against American
     emancipation. The son of an American loyalist, who remains true
     to our flag, falls among the hostile redskins in that very Huron
     country which has been endeared to us by the exploits of Hawkeye
     and Chingachgook."--_The Times._


     +The Lion of St. Mark+: A Tale of Venice in the Fourteenth
     Century. By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by
     GORDON BROWNE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A story of Venice at a period when her strength and splendor were put
to the severest tests. The hero displays a fine sense and manliness
which carry him safely through an atmosphere of intrigue, crime, and
bloodshed. He contributes largely to the victories of the Venetians at
Porto d'Anzo and Chioggia, and finally wins the hand of the daughter of
one of the chief men of Venice.

     "Every boy should read 'The Lion of St. Mark.' Mr. Henty has
     never produced a story more delightful, more wholesome, or more
     vivacious."--_Saturday Review._


     +A Final Reckoning+: A Tale of Bush Life in Australia, By
     G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by W. B. WOLLEN.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00,

The hero, a young English lad, after rather a stormy boyhood, emigrates
to Australia, and gets employment as an officer in the mounted police.
A few years of active work on the frontier, where he has many a brush
with both natives and bushrangers, gain him promotion to a captaincy,
and he eventually settles down to the peaceful life of a squatter.

     "Mr. Henty has never published a more readable, a more carefully
     constructed, or a better written story than this."--_Spectator._


     +Under Drake's Flag+: A Tale of the Spanish Main. By G.
     A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A story of the days when England and Spain struggled for the supremacy
of the sea. The heroes sail as lads with Drake in the Pacific
expedition, and in his great voyage of circumnavigation. The historical
portion of the story is absolutely to be relied upon, but this will
perhaps be less attractive than the great variety of exciting adventure
through which the young heroes pass in the course of their voyages.

     "A book of adventure, where the hero meets with experience enough,
     one would think, to turn his hair gray."--_Harper's Monthly
     Magazine._


     +By Sheer Pluck+: A Tale of the Ashanti War. By G.
     A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The author has woven, in a tale of thrilling interest, all the details
of the Ashanti campaign, of which he was himself a witness. His hero,
after many exciting adventures in the interior, is detained a prisoner
by the king just before the outbreak of the war but escapes, and
accompanies the English expedition on their march to Coomassie.

     "Mr. Henty keeps up his reputation as a writer of boys' stories.
     'By Sheer Pluck' will be eagerly read."--_Athenæum._


     +By Pike and Dyke+: A Tale of the Rise of the Dutch Republic.
     By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by MAYNARD BROWN,
     and 4 Maps. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

In this story Mr. Henty traces the adventures and brave deeds of an
English boy in the household of the ablest man of his age--William the
Silent. Edward Martin, the son of an English sea-captain, enters the
service of the Prince as a volunteer, and is employed by him in many
dangerous and responsible missions, in the discharge of which he passes
through the great sieges of the time. He ultimately settles down as Sir
Edward Martin.

     "Boys with a turn for historical research will be enchanted with
     the book, while the rest who only care for adventure will be
     students in spite of themselves."--_St. James' Gazette._


     +St. George for England+: A Tale of Cressy and Poitiers. By
     G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

No portion of English history is more crowded with great events than
that of the reign of Edward III. Cressy and Poitiers; the destruction
of the Spanish fleet; the plague of the Black Death; the Jacquerie
rising; these are treated by the author in "St. George for England."
The hero of the story, although of good family, begins life as a London
apprentice, but after countless adventures and perils becomes by valor
and good conduct the squire, and at last the trusted friend of the
Black Prince.

     "Mr. Henty has developed for himself a type of historical
     novel for boys which bids fair to supplement, on their behalf,
     the historical labors of Sir Walter Scott in the land of
     fiction."--_The Standard._


     +Captain's Kidd's Gold+: The True Story of an Adventurous
     Sailor Boy. By JAMES FRANKLIN FITTS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

There is something fascinating to the average youth in the very
idea of buried treasure. A vision arises before his eyes of swarthy
Portuguese and Spanish rascals, with black beards and gleaming
eyes--sinister-looking fellows who once on a time haunted the Spanish
Main, sneaking out from some hidden creek in their long, low schooner,
of picaroonish rake and sheer, to attack an unsuspecting trading
craft. There were many famous sea rovers in their day, but none more
celebrated than Capt. Kidd. Perhaps the most fascinating tale of all is
Mr. Fitts' true story of an adventurous American boy, who receives from
his dying father an ancient bit of vellum, which the latter obtained
in a curious way. The document bears obscure directions purporting
to locate a certain island in the Bahama group, and a considerable
treasure buried there by two of Kidd's crew. The hero of this book,
Paul Jones Garry, is an ambitious, persevering lad, of salt-water New
England ancestry, and his efforts to reach the island and secure the
money form one of the most absorbing tales for our youth that has come
from the press.


     +Captain Bayley's Heir+: A Tale of the Gold Fields of California
     By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by H. M. PAGET.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A frank, manly lad and his cousin are rivals in the heirship of a
considerable property. The former falls into a trap laid by the latter,
and while under a false accusation of theft foolishly leaves England
for America. He works his passage before the mast, joins a small band
of hunters, crosses a tract of country infested with Indians to the
Californian gold diggings, and is successful both as digger and trader.

     "Mr. Henty is careful to mingle instruction with entertainment;
     and the humorous touches, especially in the sketch of John Holl,
     the Westminster dustman, Dickens himself could hardly have
     excelled."--_Christian Leader._


     +For Name and Fame+; or, Through Afghan Passes. By G.
     A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

An interesting story of the last war in Afghanistan. The hero, after
being wrecked and going through many stirring adventures among the
Malays, finds his way to Calcutta and enlists in a regiment proceeding
to join the army at the Afghan passes. He accompanies the force under
General Roberts to the Peiwar Kotal, is wounded, taken prisoner,
carried to Cabul, whence he is transferred to Candahar, and takes part
in the final defeat of the army of Ayoub Khan.

     "The best feature of the book--apart from the interest of its
     scenes of adventure--is its honest effort to do justice to the
     patriotism of the Afghan people."--_Daily News._


     +Captured by Apes+: The Wonderful Adventures of a Young
     Animal Trainer. By HARRY PRENTICE. 12mo, cloth, $1.00.

The scene of this tale is laid on an island in the Malay Archipelago.
Philip Garland, a young animal collector and trainer, of New York, sets
sail for Eastern seas in quest of a new stock of living curiosities.
The vessel is wrecked off the coast of Borneo and young Garland, the
sole survivor of the disaster, is cast ashore on a small island and
captured by the apes that overrun the place. The lad discovers that the
ruling spirit of the monkey tribe is a gigantic and vicious baboon,
whom he identifies as Goliah, an animal at one time in his possession
and with whose instruction he had been especially diligent. The brute
recognizes him, and with a kind of malignant satisfaction puts his
former master through the same course of training he had himself
experienced with a faithfulness of detail which shows how astonishing
is monkey recollection. Very novel indeed is the way by which the young
man escapes death. Mr. Prentice has certainly worked a new vein on
juvenile fiction, and the ability with which he handles a difficult
subject stamps him as a writer of undoubted skill.


     +The Bravest of the Brave+; or, With Peterborough in Spain.
     By G. A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by H. M. PAGET.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

There are few great leaders whose lives and actions have so completely
fallen into oblivion as those of the Earl of Peterborough. This is
largely due to the fact that they were overshadowed by the glory and
successes of Marlborough. His career as general extended over little
more than a year, and yet, in that time, he showed a genius for warfare
which has never been surpassed.

     "Mr. Henty never loses sight of the moral purpose of his work--to
     enforce the doctrine of courage and truth. Lads will read 'The
     Bravest of the Brave' with pleasure and profit; of that we are
     quite sure."--_Daily Telegraph._


     +The Cat of Bubastes+: A Story of Ancient Egypt. By G. A.
     HENTY. With full-page Illustrations. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A story which will give young readers an unsurpassed insight into the
customs of the Egyptian people. Amuba, a prince of the Rebu nation, is
carried with his charioteer Jethro into slavery. They become inmates
of the house of Ameres, the Egyptian high-priest, and are happy in his
service until the priest's son accidentally kills the sacred cat of
Bubastes. In an outburst of popular fury Ameres is killed, and it rests
with Jethro and Amuba to secure the escape of the high-priest's son and
daughter.

     "The story, from the critical moment of the killing of the sacred
     cat to the perilous exodus into Asia with which it closes, is very
     skillfully constructed and full of exciting adventures. It is
     admirably illustrated."--_Saturday Review._


     +With Washington at Monmouth+: A Story of Three Philadelphia
     Boys. By JAMES OTIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Three Philadelphia boys, Seth Graydon "whose mother conducted a
boarding-house which was patronized by the British officers;" Enoch
Ball, "son of that Mrs. Ball whose dancing school was situated on
Letitia Street," and little Jacob, son of "Chris, the Baker," serve
as the principal characters. The story is laid during the winter when
Lord Howe held possession of the city, and the lads aid the cause by
assisting the American spies who make regular and frequent visits from
Valley Forge. One reads here of home-life in the captive city when
bread was scarce among the people of the lower classes, and a reckless
prodigality shown by the British officers, who passed the winter in
feasting and merry-making while the members of the patriot army but
a few miles away were suffering from both cold and hunger. The story
abounds with pictures of Colonial life skillfully drawn, and the
glimpses of Washington's soldiers which are given show that the work
has not been hastily done, or without considerable study.


     +For the Temple+: A Tale of the Fall of Jerusalem. By G. A.
     HENTY, With full-page Illustrations by S. J. SOLOMON.
     12mo, cloth, price $1,00.

Mr. Henty here weaves into the record of Josephus an admirable and
attractive story. The troubles in the district of Tiberias, the
march of the legions, the sieges of Jotapata, of Gamala, and of
Jerusalem, form the impressive and carefully studied historic setting
to the figure of the lad who passes from the vineyard to the service
of Josephus, becomes the leader of a guerrilla band of patriots,
fights bravely for the Temple, and after a brief term of slavery at
Alexandria, returns to his Galilean home with the favor of Titus.

     "Mr. Henty's graphic prose pictures of the hopeless Jewish
     resistance to Roman sway add another leaf to his record of the
     famous wars of the world."--_Graphic._


     +Facing Death+; or, The Hero of the Vaughan Pit. A Tale
     of the Coal Mines. By G. A. HENTY. With full-page
     Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

"Facing Death" is a story with a purpose. It is intended to show that
a lad who makes up his mind firmly and resolutely that he will rise
in life, and who is prepared to face toil and ridicule and hardship
to carry out his determination, is sure to succeed. The hero of the
story is a typical British boy, dogged, earnest, generous, and though
"shamefaced" to a degree, is ready to face death in the discharge of
duty.

     "The tale is well written and well illustrated, and there is
     much eanty in the characters. If any father, clergyman, or
     schoolmaster is on the lookout for a good book to give as a
     present to a boy who is worth his salt, this is the book we would
     recommend."--_Standard._


     +Tom Temple's Career.+ By HORATIO ALGER. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Tom Temple, a bright, self-reliant lad, by the death of his father
becomes a boarder at the home of Nathan Middleton, a penurious
insurance agent. Though well paid for keeping the boy, Nathan and his
wife endeavor to bring Master Tom in line with their parsimonious
habits. The lad ingeniously evades their efforts and revolutionizes the
household. As Tom is heir to $40,000, he is regarded as a person of
some importance until by an unfortunate combination of circumstances
his fortune shrinks to a few hundreds. He leaves Plympton village to
seek work in New York, whence he undertakes an important mission to
California, around which center the most exciting incidents of his
young career. Some of his adventures in the far west are so startling
that the reader will scarcely close the book until the last page shall
have been reached. The tale is written in Mr. Alger's most fascinating
style, and is bound to please the very large class of boys who regard
this popular author as a prime favorite.


     +Maori and Settler+: A Story of the New Zealand War. By G.
     A. HENTY. With full-page Illustrations by ALFRED PEARSE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The Renshaws emigrate to New Zealand during the period of the war
with the natives. Wilfrid, a strong, self-reliant, courageous lad, is
the mainstay of the household. He has for his friend Mr. Atherton, a
botanist and naturalist of herculean strength and unfailing nerve and
humor. In the adventures among the Maoris, there are many breathless
moments in which the odds seem hopelessly against the party, but they
succeed in establishing themselves happily in one of the pleasant New
Zealand valleys.

     "Brimful of adventure, of humorous and interesting conversation,
     and vivid pictures of colonial life."--_Schoolmaster._


     +Julian Mortimer+: A Brave Boy's Struggle for Home and
     Fortune. By HARRY CASTLEMON. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Here is a story that will warm every boy's heart. There is mystery
enough to keep any lad's imagination wound up to the highest pitch.
The scene of the story lies west of the Mississippi river, in the days
when emigrants made their perilous way across the great plains to the
land of gold. One of the startling features of the book is the attack
upon the wagon train by a large party of Indians. Our hero is a lad
of uncommon nerve and pluck, a brave young American in every sense of
the word. He enlists and holds the reader's sympathy from the outset.
Surrounded by an unknown and constant peril, and assisted by the
unswerving fidelity of a stalwart trapper, a real rough diamond, our
hero achieves the most happy results. Harry Castlemon has written many
entertaining stories for boys, and it would seem almost superfluous to
say anything in his praise, for the youth of America regard him as a
favorite author.


     +"Carrots:"+ Just a Little Boy. By MRS. MOLESWORTH.
     With Illustrations by WALTER CRANE. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "One of the cleverest and most pleasing stories it has been our
     good fortune to meet with for some time. Carrots and his sister
     are delightful little beings, whom to read about is at once to
     become very fond of."--_Examiner._

     "A genuine children's book; we've seen 'em seize it, and read
     it greedily. Children are first-rate critics, and thoroughly
     appreciate Walter Crane's illustrations."--_Punch._


     +Mopsa the Fairy.+ By JEAN INGELOW. With Eight page
     Illustrations. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "Miss Ingelow is, to our mind, the most charming of all living
     writers for children, and 'Mopsa' alone ought to give her a kind
     of pre-emptive right to the love and gratitude of our young folks.
     It requires genius to conceive a purely imaginary work which must
     of necessity deal with the supernatural, without running into a
     mere riot of fantastic absurdity; but genius Miss Ingelow has and
     the story of 'Jack' is as careless and joyous, but as delicate, as
     a picture of childhood."--_Eclectic._


     +A Jaunt Through Java+: The Story of a Journey to the Sacred
     Mountain. By EDWARD S. ELLIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The central interest of this story is found in the thrilling adventures
of two cousins, Hermon and Eustace Hadley, on their trip across the
island of Java, from Samarang to the Sacred Mountain. In a land where
the Royal Bengal tiger runs at large; where the rhinoceros and other
fierce beasts are to be met with at unexpected moments; it is but
natural that the heroes of this book should have a lively experience.
Hermon not only distinguishes himself by killing a full grown tiger
at short range, but meets with the most startling adventure of the
journey. There is much in this narrative to instruct as well as
entertain the reader, and so deftly has Mr. Ellis used his material
that there is not a dull page in the book. The two heroes are brave,
manly young fellows, bubbling over with boyish independence. They cope
with the many difficulties that arise during the trip in a fearless way
that is bound to win the admiration of every lad who is so fortunate as
to read their adventures.


     +Wrecked on Spider Island+; or, How Ned Rogers Found the
     Treasure. By JAMES OTIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A "down-east" plucky lad who ships as cabin boy, not from love of
adventure, but because it is the only course remaining by which he
can gain a livelihood. While in his bunk, seasick, Ned Rogers hears
the captain and mate discussing their plans for the willful wreck of
the brig in order to gain the insurance. Once it is known he is in
possession of the secret the captain maroons him on Spider Island,
explaining to the crew that the boy is afflicted with leprosy. While
thus involuntarily playing the part of a Crusoe, Ned discovers a wreck
submerged in the sand, and overhauling the timbers for the purpose
of gathering material with which to build a hut finds a considerable
amount of treasure. Raising the wreck; a voyage to Havana under sail;
shipping there a crew and running for Savannah; the attempt of the crew
to seize the little craft after learning of the treasure on board, and,
as a matter of course, the successful ending of the journey, all serve
to make as entertaining a story of sea-life as the most captious boy
could desire.


     +Geoff and Jim+: A Story of School Life. By ISMAY THORN.
     Illustrated by A. G. WALKER. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "This is a prettily told story of the life spent by two motherless
     bairns at a small preparatory school. Both Geoff and Jim are very
     lovable characters, only Jim is the more so; and the scrapes he
     gets into and the trials he endures will, no doubt, interest a
     large circle of young readers."--_Church Times._

     "This is a capital children's story, the characters
     well portrayed, and the book tastefully bound and well
     illustrated."--_Schoolmaster._

     "The story can be heartily recommended as a present for
     boys."--_Standard._


     +The Castaways+; or, On the Florida Reefs. By JAMES OTIS.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

This tale smacks of the salt sea. It is just the kind of story that
the majority of boys yearn for. From the moment that the Sea Queen
dispenses with the services of the tug in lower New York bay till the
breeze leaves her becalmed off the coast of Florida, one can almost
hear the whistle of the wind through her rigging, the creak of her
straining cordage as she heels to the leeward, and feel her rise to
the snow-capped waves which her sharp bow cuts into twin streaks of
foam. Off Marquesas Keys she floats in a dead calm. Ben Clark, the hero
of the story, and Jake, the cook, spy a turtle asleep upon the glassy
surface of the water. They determine to capture him, and take a boat
for that purpose, and just as they succeed in catching him a thick fog
cuts them off from the vessel, and then their troubles begin. They
take refuge on board a drifting hulk, a storm arises and they are cast
ashore upon a low sandy key. Their adventures from this point cannot
fail to charm the reader. As a writer for young people Mr. Otis is a
prime favorite. His style is captivating, and never for a moment does
he allow the interest to flag. In "The Castaways" he is at his best.


     +Tom Thatcher's Fortune.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Like all of Mr. Alger's heroes, Tom Thatcher is a brave, ambitious,
unselfish boy. He supports his mother and sister on meager wages earned
as a shoe-pegger in John Simpson's factory. The story begins with Tom's
discharge from the factory, because Mr. Simpson felt annoyed with the
lad for interrogating him too closely about his missing father. A few
days afterward Tom learns that which induces him to start overland
for California with the view of probing the family mystery. He meets
with many adventures. Ultimately he returns to his native village,
bringing consternation to the soul of John Simpson, who only escapes
the consequences of his villainy by making full restitution to the
man whose friendship he had betrayed. The story is told in that
entertaining way which has made Mr. Alger's name a household word in so
many homes.


     +Birdie+: A Tale of Child Life. By H. L.
     CHILDE-PEMBERTON. Illustrated by H. W. RAINEY. 12mo,
     cloth, price 75 cents.

     "The story is quaint and simple, but there is a freshness about it
     that makes one hear again the ringing laugh and the cheery shout
     of children at play which charmed his earlier years."--_New York
     Express._


     +Popular Fairy Tales.+ By the BROTHERS GRIMM.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "From first to last, almost without exception, these stories are
     delightful."--_Athenæum._


     +With Lafayette at Yorktown+: A Story of How Two Boys Joined the
     Continental Army. By JAMES OTIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The two boys are from Portsmouth, N. H., and are introduced in August,
1781, when on the point of leaving home to enlist in Col. Scammell's
regiment, then stationed near New York City. Their method of traveling
is on horseback, and the author has given an interesting account of
what was expected from boys in the Colonial days. The lads, after no
slight amount of adventure, are sent as messengers--not soldiers--into
the south to find the troops under Lafayette. Once with that youthful
general they are given employment as spies, and enter the British
camp, bringing away valuable information. The pictures of camp-life
are carefully drawn, and the portrayal of Lafayette's character is
thoroughly well done. The story is wholesome in tone, as are all of Mr.
Otis' works. There is no lack of exciting incident which the youthful
reader craves, but it is healthful excitement brimming with facts which
every boy should be familiar with, and while the reader is following
the adventures of Ben Jaffreys and Ned Allen he is acquiring a fund of
historical lore which will remain in his memory long after that which
he has memorized from text-books has been forgotten.


     +Lost in the Canon+: Sam Willett's Adventures on the Great
     Colorado. By ALFRED R. CALHOUN. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

This story hinges on a fortune left to Sam Willett, the hero, and the
fact that it will pass to a disreputable relative if the lad dies
before he shall have reached his majority. The Vigilance Committee of
Hurley's Gulch arrest Sam's father and an associate for the crime of
murder. Their lives depend on the production of the receipt given for
money paid. This is in Sam's possession at the camp on the other side
of the cañon. A messenger is dispatched to get it. He reaches the lad
in the midst of a fearful storm which floods the cañon. His father's
peril urges Sam to action. A raft is built on which the boy and his
friends essay to cross the torrent. They fail to do so, and a desperate
trip down the stream ensues. How the party finally escape from the
horrors of their situation and Sam reaches Hurley's Gulch in the very
nick of time, is described in a graphic style that stamps Mr. Calhoun
as a master of his art.


     +Jack+: A Topsy Turvy Story. By C. M. CRAWLEY-BOEVEY.
     With upward of Thirty Illustrations by H. J. A. MILES.
     12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "The illustrations deserve particular mention, as they add largely
     to the interest of this amusing volume for children. Jack falls
     asleep with his mind full of the subject of the fishpond, and
     is very much surprised presently to find himself an inhabitant
     of Waterworld, where he goes though wonderful and edifying
     adventures. A handsome and pleasant book."--_Literary World._


     +Search for the Silver City+: A Tale of Adventure in Yucatan. By
     JAMES OTIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Two American lads, Teddy Wright and Neal Emery, embark on the steam
yacht Day Dream for a short summer cruise to the tropics. Homeward
bound the yacht is destroyed by fire. All hands take to the boats, but
during the night the boat is cast upon the coast of Yucatan. They come
across a young American named Cummings, who entertains them with the
story of the wonderful Silver City, of the Chan Santa Cruz Indians.
Cummings proposes with the aid of a faithful Indian ally to brave the
perils of the swamp and carry off a number of the golden images from
the temples. Pursued with relentless vigor for days their situation is
desperate. At last their escape is effected in an astonishing manner.
Mr. Otis has built his story on an historical foundation. It is so full
of exciting incidents that the reader is quite carried away with the
novelty and realism of the narrative.


     +Frank Fowler, the Cash Boy.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Thrown upon his own resources Frank Fowler, a poor boy, bravely
determines to make a living for himself and his foster-sister Grace.
Going to New York he obtains a situation as cash boy in a dry goods
store. He renders a service to a wealthy old gentleman named Wharton,
who takes a fancy to the lad. Frank, after losing his place as cash
boy, is enticed by an enemy to a lonesome part of New Jersey and held
a prisoner. This move recoils upon the plotter, for it leads to a
clue that enables the lad to establish his real identity. Mr. Alger's
stories are not only unusually interesting, but they convey a useful
lesson of pluck and manly independence.


     +Budd Boyd's Triumph+; or, the Boy Firm of Fox Island. By
     WILLIAM P. CHIPMAN. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The scene of this story is laid on the upper part of Narragansett
Bay, and the leading incidents have a strong salt water flavor. Owing
to the conviction of his father for forgery and theft, Budd Boyd is
compelled to leave his home and strike out for himself. Chance brings
Budd in contact with Judd Floyd. The two boys, being ambitious and
clear sighted, form a partnership to catch and sell fish. The scheme
is successfully launched, but the unexpected appearance on the scene
of Thomas Bagsley, the man whom Budd believes guilty of the crimes
attributed to his father, leads to several disagreeable complications
that nearly caused the lad's ruin. His pluck and good sense, however,
carry him through his troubles. In following the career of the
boys firm of Boyd & Floyd, the youthful reader will find a useful
lesson--that industry and perseverance are bound to lead to ultimate
success.


     +The Errand Boy+; or, How Phil Brent Won Success. By HORATIO
     ALGER, JR. 12 mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The career of "The Errand Boy" embraces the city adventures of a smart
country lad who at an early age was abandoned by his father. Philip
was brought up by a kind-hearted innkeeper named Brent. The death of
Mrs. Brent paved the way for the hero's subsequent troubles. Accident
introduces him to the notice of a retired merchant in New York, who
not only secures him the situation of errand boy but thereafter stands
as his friend. An unexpected turn of fortune's wheel, however, brings
Philip and his father together. In "The Errand Boy" Philip Brent is
possessed of the same sterling qualities so conspicuous in all of the
previous creations of this delightful writer for our youth.


     +The Slate Picker+: The Story of a Boy's Life in the Coal
     Mines. By HARRY PRENTICE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

This is a story of a boy's life in the coal mines of Pennsylvania.
There are many thrilling situations, notably that of Ben Burton's
leap into the "lion's mouth"--the yawning shute in the breakers--to
escape a beating at the hands of the savage Spilkins, the overseer.
Gracie Gordon is a little angel in rags, Terence O'Dowd is a manly,
sympathetic lad, and Enoch Evans, the miner-poet, is a big-hearted,
honest fellow, a true friend to all whose burdens seem too heavy for
them to bear. Ben Burton, the hero, had a hard road to travel, but
by grit and energy he advanced step by step until he found himself
called upon to fill the position of chief engineer of the Kohinoor Coal
Company.


     +A Runaway Brig+; or, An Accidental Cruise. By JAMES OTIS.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

"A Runaway Brig" is a sea tale, pure and simple, and that's where it
strikes a boy's fancy. The reader can look out upon the wide shimmering
sea as it flashes back the sunlight, and imagine himself afloat with
Harry Vandyne, Walter Morse, Jim Libby and that old shell-back, Bob
Brace, on the brig Bonita, which lands on one of the Bahama keys.
Finally three strangers steal the craft, leaving the rightful owners
to shift for themselves aboard a broken-down tug. The boys discover
a mysterious document which enables them to find a buried treasure,
then a storm comes on and the tug is stranded. At last a yacht comes
in sight and the party with the treasure is taken off the lonely key.
The most exacting youth is sure to be fascinated with this entertaining
story.


     +Fairy Tales and Stories.+ By HANS CHRISTIAN ANDERSEN.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "If I were asked to select a child's library I should name these
     three volumes 'English,' 'Celtic,' and 'Indian Fairy Tales,' with
     Grimm and Hans Andersen's Fairy Tales."--_Independent._


     +The Island Treasure+; or, Harry Darrel's Fortune. By FRANK
     H. CONVERSE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Harry Darrel, an orphan, having received a nautical training on a
school-ship, is bent on going to sea with a boyish acquaintance named
Dan Plunket. A runaway horse changes his prospects. Harry saves Dr.
Gregg from drowning and the doctor presents his preserver with a bit of
property known as Gregg's Island, and makes the lad sailing-master of
his sloop yacht. A piratical hoard is supposed to be hidden somewhere
on the island. After much search and many thwarted plans, at last Dan
discovers the treasure and is the means of finding Harry's father. Mr.
Converse's stories possess a charm of their own which is appreciated by
lads who delight in good healthy tales that smack of salt water.


     +The Boy Explorers+: The Adventures of Two Boys in Alaska. By
     HARRY PRENTICE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Two boys, Raymond and Spencer Manning, travel from San Francisco to
Alaska to join their father in search of their uncle, who, it is
believed, was captured and detained by the inhabitants of a place
called the "Heart of Alaska." On their arrival at Sitka the boys with
an Indian guide set off across the mountains. The trip is fraught
with perils that test the lads' courage to the utmost. Reaching the
Yukon River they build a raft and float down the stream, entering the
Mysterious River, from which they barely escape with their lives, only
to be captured by natives of the Heart of Alaska. All through their
exciting adventures the lads demonstrate what can be accomplished
by pluck and resolution, and their experience makes one of the most
interesting tales ever written.


     +The Treasure Finders+: A Boy's Adventures in Nicaragua. By
     JAMES OTIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Roy and Dean Coloney, with their guide Tongla, leave their father's
indigo plantation to visit the wonderful ruins of an ancient city. The
boys eagerly explore the dismantled temples of an extinct race and
discover three golden images cunningly hidden away. They escape with
the greatest difficulty; by taking advantage of a festive gathering
they seize a canoe and fly down the river. Eventually they reach safety
with their golden prizes. Mr. Otis is the prince of story tellers, for
he handles his material with consummate skill. We doubt if he has ever
written a more entertaining story than "The Treasure Finders."


     +Household Fairy Tales.+ By the BROTHERS GRIMM.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "As a collection of fairy tales to delight children of all ages
     this work ranks second to none."--_Daily Graphic._


     +Dan the Newsboy.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The reader is introduced to Dan Mordaunt and his mother living in a
poor tenement, and the lad is pluckily trying to make ends meet by
selling papers in the streets of New York. A little heiress of six
years is confided to the care of the Mordaunts. At the same time the
lad obtains a position in a wholesale house. He soon demonstrates
how valuable he is to the firm by detecting the bookkeeper in a bold
attempt to rob his employers. The child is kidnaped and Dan tracks the
child to the house where she is hidden, and rescues her. The wealthy
aunt of the little heiress is so delighted with Dan's courage and many
good qualities that she adopts him as her heir, and the conclusion of
the book leaves the hero on the high road to every earthly desire.


     +Tony the Hero+: A Brave Boy's Adventure with a Tramp. By
     HORATIO ALGER, JR. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Tony, a sturdy bright-eyed boy of fourteen, is under the control of
Rudolph Rugg, a thorough rascal, shiftless and lazy, spending his time
tramping about the country. After much abuse Tony runs away and gets a
job as stable boy in a country hotel. Tony is heir to a large estate
in England, and certain persons find it necessary to produce proof of
the lad's death. Rudolph for a consideration hunts up Tony and throws
him down a deep well. Of course Tony escapes from the fate provided
for him, and by a brave act makes a rich friend, with whom he goes
to England, where he secures his rights and is prosperous. The fact
that Mr. Alger is the author of this entertaining book will at once
recommend it to all juvenile readers.


     +A Young Hero+; or, Fighting to Win. By EDWARD S. ELLIS.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

This story tells how a valuable solid silver service was stolen from
the Misses Perkinpine, two very old and simple minded ladies. Fred
Sheldon, the hero of this story and a friend of the old ladies,
undertakes to discover the thieves and have them arrested. After much
time spent in detective work, he succeeds in discovering the silver
plate and winning the reward for its restoration. During the narrative
a circus comes to town and a thrilling account of the escape of the
lion from its cage, with its recapture, is told in Mr. Ellis' most
fascinating style. Every boy will be glad to read this delightful book.


     +The Days of Bruce+: A Story from Scottish History. By
     GRACE AGUILAR. Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "There is a delightful freshness, sincerity and vivacity about all
     of Grace Aguilar's stories which cannot fail to win the interest
     and admiration of every lover of good reading."--_Boston Beacon._


     +Tom the Bootblack+; or, The Road to Success. By HORATIO ALGER, JR.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A bright, enterprising lad was Tom the bootblack. He was not at all
ashamed of his humble calling, though always on the lookout to better
himself. His guardian, old Jacob Morton, died, leaving him a small sum
of money and a written confession that Tom, instead of being of humble
origin, was the son and heir of a deceased Western merchant, and had
been defrauded out of his just rights by an unscrupulous uncle. The
lad started for Cincinnati to look up his heritage. But three years
passed away before he obtained his first clue. Mr. Grey, the uncle, did
not hesitate to employ a ruffian to kill the lad. The plan failed, and
Gilbert Grey, once Tom the bootblack, came into a comfortable fortune.
This is one of Mr. Alger's best stories.


     +Captured by Zulus+: A story of Trapping in Africa. By
     HARRY PRENTICE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

This story details the adventures of two lads, Dick Elsworth and Bob
Harvey, in the wilds of South Africa, for the purpose of obtaining a
supply of zoological curiosities. By stratagem the Zulus capture Dick
and Bob and take them to their principal kraal or village. The lads
escape death by digging their way out of the prison hut by night. They
are pursued, and after a rough experience the boys eventually rejoin
the expedition and take part in several wild animal hunts. The Zulus
finally give up pursuit and the expedition arrives at the coast without
further trouble. Mr. Prentice has a delightful method of blending
fact with fiction. He tells exactly how wild-beast collectors secure
specimens on their native stamping grounds, and these descriptions make
very entertaining reading.


     +Tom the Ready+; or, Up from the Lowest. By RANDOLPH HILL.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

This is a dramatic narrative of the unaided rise of a fearless,
ambitious boy from the lowest round of fortune's ladder--the gate of
the poorhouse--to wealth and the governorship of his native State.
Thomas Seacomb begins life with a purpose. While yet a schoolboy he
conceives and presents to the world the germ of the Overland Express
Co. At the very outset of his career jealousy and craft seek to
blast his promising future. Later he sets out to obtain a charter
for a railroad line in connection with the express business. Now he
realizes what it is to match himself against capital. Yet he wins
and the railroad is built. Only an uncommon nature like Tom's could
successfully oppose such a combine. How he manages to win the battle is
told by Mr. Hill in a masterful way that thrills the reader and holds
his attention and sympathy to the end.


     +Roy Gilbert's Search+: A Tale of the Great Lakes. By WM. P.
     CHIPMAN. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A deep mystery hangs over the parentage of Roy Gilbert. He arranges
with two schoolmates to make a tour of the Great Lakes on a steam
launch. The three boys leave Erie on the launch and visit many points
of interest on the lakes. Soon afterward the lad is conspicuous in the
rescue of an elderly gentleman and a lady from a sinking yacht. Later
on the cruise of the launch is brought to a disastrous termination
and the boys narrowly escape with their lives. The hero is a manly,
self-reliant boy, whose adventures will be followed with interest.


     +The Young Scout+; The Story of a West Point Lieutenant. By
     EDWARD S. ELLIS. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The crafty Apache chief Geronimo but a few years ago was the most
terrible scourge of the southwest border. The author has woven, in a
tale of thrilling interest, all the incidents of Geronimo's last raid.
The hero is Lieutenant James Decker, a recent graduate of West Point.
Ambitious to distinguish himself so as to win well-deserved promotion,
the young man takes many a desperate chance against the enemy and
on more than one occasion narrowly escapes with his life. The story
naturally abounds in thrilling situations, and being historically
correct, it is reasonable to believe it will find great favor with the
boys. In our opinion Mr. Ellis is the best writer of Indian stories now
before the public.


     +Adrift in the Wilds+: The Adventures of Two Shipwrecked
     Boys. BY EDWARD S. ELLIS. 12mo, cloth, price, $1.00.

Elwood Brandon and Howard Lawrence, cousins and schoolmates,
accompanied by a lively Irishman called O'Rooney, are enroute for
San Francisco. Off the coast of California the steamer takes fire.
The two boys and their companion reach the shore with several of the
passengers. While O'Rooney and the lads are absent inspecting the
neighborhood O'Rooney has an exciting experience and young Brandon
becomes separated from his party. He is captured by hostile Indians,
but is rescued by an Indian whom the lads had assisted. This is a very
entertaining narrative of Southern California in the days immediately
preceding the construction of the Pacific railroads. Mr. Ellis seems to
be particularly happy in this line of fiction, and the present story is
fully as entertaining as anything he has ever written.


     +The Red Fairy Book.+ Edited by ANDREW LANG.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "A gift-book that will charm any child, and all older folk who
     have been fortunate enough to retain their taste for the old
     nursery stories."--_Literary World._


     +The Boy Cruisers+; or, Paddling in Florida. BY ST. GEORGE
     RATHBORNE. 12mo, cloth, price, $1.00.

Boys who like an admixture of sport and adventure will find this book
just to their taste. We promise them that they will not go to sleep
over the rattling experiences of Andrew George and Roland Carter, who
start on a canoe trip along the Gulf coast, from Key West to Tampa,
Florida. Their first adventure is with a pair of rascals who steal
their boats. Next they run into a gale in the Gulf and have a lively
experience while it lasts. After that they have a lively time with
alligators and divers varieties of the finny tribe. Andrew gets into
trouble with a band of Seminole Indians and gets away without having
his scalp raised. After this there is no lack of fun till they reach
their destination. That Mr. Rathborne knows just how to interest the
boys is apparent at a glance, and lads who are in search of a rare
treat will do well to read this entertaining story.


     +Guy Harris+: The Runaway. BY HARRY CASTLEMON. 12mo,
     cloth, price $1.00.

Guy Harris lived in a small city on the shore of one of the Great
Lakes. His head became filled with quixotic notions of going West to
hunt grizzlies, in fact, Indians. He is persuaded to go to sea, and
gets a glimpse of the rough side of life in a sailor's boarding house.
He ships on a vessel and for five months leads a hard life. He deserts
his ship at San Francisco and starts out to become a backwoodsman, but
rough experiences soon cure him of all desire to be a hunter. At St.
Louis he becomes a clerk and for a time he yields to the temptations of
a great city. The book will not only interest boys generally on account
of its graphic style, but will put many facts before their eyes in a
new light. This is one of Castlemon's most attractive stories.


     +The Train Boy.+ BY HORATIO ALGER, JR. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Paul Palmer was a wide-awake boy of sixteen who supported his mother
and sister by selling books and papers on one of the trains running
between Chicago and Milwaukee. He detects a young man named Luke
Denton in the act of picking the pockets of a young lady, and also
incurs the enmity of his brother Stephen, a worthless follow. Luke and
Stephen plot to ruin Paul, but their plans are frustrated. In a railway
accident many passengers are killed, but Paul is fortunate enough to
assist a Chicago merchant, who out of gratitude takes him into his
employ. Paul is sent to manage a mine in Custer City and executes his
commission with tact and judgment and is well started on the road to
business prominence. This is one of Mr. Alger's most attractive stories
and is sure to please all readers.


     +Joe's Luck+: A Boy's Adventures in California. BY HORATIO
     ALGER, JR. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Without a doubt Joe Mason was a lucky boy, but he deserved the golden
chances that fell to his lot, for he had the pluck and ambition to push
himself to the front. Joe had but one dollar in the world when he stood
despondently on the California Mail Steamship Co.'s dock in New York
watching the preparations incident to the departure of the steamer.
The same dollar was still Joe's entire capital when he landed in the
bustling town of tents and one-story cabins--the San Francisco of '51,
and inside of the week the boy was proprietor of a small restaurant
earning a comfortable profit. The story is chock full of stirring
incidents, while the amusing situations are furnished by Joshua
Bickford, from Pumpkin Hollow, and the fellow who modestly styles
himself the "Rip-tail Roarer, from Pike Co., Missouri." Mr. Alger never
writes a poor book, and "Joe's Luck" is certainly one of his best.


     +Three Bright Girls+: A Story of Chance and Mischance. By
     ANNIE E. ARMSTRONG. With full page Illustrations by
     W. PARKINSON. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

By a sudden turn of fortune's wheel the three heroines of this story
are brought down from a household of lavish comfort to meet the
incessant cares and worries of those who have to eke out a very limited
income. And the charm of the story lies in the cheery helpfulness of
spirit developed in the girls by their changed circumstances; while the
author finds a pleasant ending to all their happy makeshifts.

     "The story is charmingly told, and the book can be warmly
     recommended as a present for girls."--_Standard._


     +Giannetta+: A Girl's Story of Herself. By ROSA MULHOLLAND.
     With full-page Illustrations by LOCKHART BOGLE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The daughter of a gentleman, who had married a poor Swiss girl, was
stolen as an infant by some of her mother's relatives. The child having
died, they afterward for the sake of gain substitute another child for
it, and the changeling, after becoming a clever modeler of clay images,
is suddenly transferred to the position of a rich heiress. She develops
into a good and accomplished woman, and though the imposture of her
early friends is finally discovered, she has gained too much love and
devotion to be really a sufferer by the surrender of her estates.

     "Extremely well told and full of interest. Giannetta is a true
     heroine--warm-hearted, self-sacrificing, and, as all good women
     nowadays are, largely touched with enthusiasm of humanity. The
     illustrations are unusually good. One of the most attractive gift
     books of the season."--_The Academy._


     +Margery Merton's Girlhood.+ By ALICE CORKRAN. With
     full-page Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

The experiences of an orphan girl who in infancy is left by her
father--an officer in India--to the care of an elderly aunt residing
near Paris. The accounts of the various persons who have an after
influence on the story, the school companions of Margery, the sisters
of the Conventual College of Art, the professor, and the peasantry of
Fontainebleau, are singularly vivid. There is a subtle attraction about
the book which will make it a great favorite with thoughtful girls.

     "Another book for girls we can warmly commend. There is a
     delightful piquancy in the experiences and trials of a young
     English girl who studies painting in Paris."--_Saturday Review._


     +Under False Colors+: A Story from Two Girls' Lives. By
     SARAH DOUDNEY. With full-page Illustrations by G. G. KILBURNE.
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

A story which has in it so strong a dramatic element that it will
attract readers of all ages and of either sex. The incidents of the
plot, arising from the thoughtless indulgence of a deceptive freak,
are exceedingly natural, and the keen interest of the narrative is
sustained from beginning to end.

     "Sarah Doudney has no superior as a writer of high-toned
     stories--pure in style, original in conception, and with
     skillfully wrought out plots; but we have seen nothing equal in
     dramatic energy to this book."--_Christian Leader._


     +Down the Snow Stairs+; or, From Good-night to Good-morning.
     By ALICE CORKRAN. With Illustrations by GORDON BROWNE.
     12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

This is a remarkable story: full of vivid fancy and quaint originality.
In its most fantastic imaginings it carries with it a sense of reality,
and derives a singular attraction from that combination of simplicity,
originality, and subtle humor, which is so much appreciated by lively
and thoughtful children. Children of a larger growth will also be
deeply interested in Kitty's strange journey, and her wonderful
experiences.

     "Among all the Christmas volumes which the year has brought to
     our table this one stands out _facile princeps_--a gem of the
     first water, bearing upon every one of its pages the signet
     mark of genius.... All is told with such simplicity and perfect
     naturalness that the dream appears to be a solid reality. It is
     indeed a Little Pilgrims Progress."--_Christian Leader._


     +The Tapestry Room+: A Child's Romance. By MRS. MOLESWORTH.
     Illustrated by WALTER CRANE. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "Mrs. Molesworth is a charming painter of the nature and ways of
     children; and she has done good service in giving us this charming
     juvenile which will delight the young people."--_Athenæum_, London.


     +Little Miss Peggy+: Only a Nursery Story. By MRS. MOLESWORTH.
     With Illustrations by WALTER CRANE. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

Mrs. Molesworth's children are finished studies. She is never
sentimental, but writes common sense in a straightforward manner. A
joyous earnest spirit pervades her work, and her sympathy is unbounded.
She loves them with her whole heart, while she lays bare their little
minds, and expresses their foibles, their faults, their virtues, their
inward struggles, their conception of duty, and their instinctive
knowledge of the right and wrong of things. She knows their characters,
she understands their wants, and she desires to help them.


     +Polly+: A New Fashioned Girl. By L. T. MEADE.
     Illustrated 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

Few authors have achieved a popularity equal to Mrs. Meade as a writer
of stories for young girls. Her characters are living beings of flesh
and blood, not lay figures of conventional type. Into the trials and
crosses, and everyday experiences, the reader enters at once with zest
and hearty sympathy. While Mrs. Meade always writes with a high moral
purpose, her lessons of life, purity and nobility of character are
rather inculcated by example than intruded as sermons.


     +Rosy.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. Illustrated by WALTER CRANE.
     12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

Mrs. Molesworth, considering the quality and quantity of her labors,
is the best story-teller for children England has yet known. This is a
bold statement and requires substantiation, Mrs. Molesworth, during the
last six years, has never failed to occupy a prominent place among the
juvenile writers of the season.

     "A very pretty story.... The writer knows children and
     their ways well.... The illustrations are exceedingly well
     drawn."--_Spectator._


     +Little Sunshine's Holiday+: A Picture from Life. By MISS
     MULOCK. Illustrated by WALTER CRANE. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "This is a pretty narrative of baby life, describing the simple
     doings and sayings of a very charming and rather precocious child
     nearly three years old."--_Pall Mall Gazette._

     "Will be delightful to those who have nurseries peopled by 'Little
     Sunshines' of their own."--_Athenæum._


     +Esther+: A Book for Girls. By ROSA N. CAREY.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "She inspires her readers simply by bringing them in contact
     with the characters, who are in themselves inspiring. Her
     simple stories are woven in order to give her an opportunity
     to describe her characters by their own conduct in seasons of
     trial."--_Chicago Times._


     +Sweet Content.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. Illustrated by
     W. RAINEY. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "It seems to me not at all easier to draw a lifelike child than
     to draw a lifelike man or woman: Shakespeare and Webster were the
     only two men of their age who could do it with perfect delicacy
     and success. Our own age is more fortunate, on this single score
     at least, having a larger and far nobler proportion of female
     writers; among whom, since the death of George Eliot, there is
     none left whose touch is so exquisite and masterly, whose love
     is so thoroughly according to knowledge, whose bright and sweet
     invention is so fruitful, so truthful, or so delightful as Mrs.
     Molesworth."--A. C. SWINBURNE.


     +One of a Covey.+ By the Author of "Honor Bright," "Miss
     Toosey's Mission." With Numerous Illustrations by H. J. A.
     MILES. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "Full of spirit and life, so well sustained throughout that
     grown-up readers may enjoy it as much as children. This
     'Covey' consists of the twelve children of a hard-pressed Dr.
     Partridge, out of which is chosen a little girl to be adopted
     by a spoilt, fine lady.... It is one of the best books of the
     season."--_Guardian._

     "We have rarely read a story for boys and girls with greater
     pleasure. One of the chief characters would not have disgraced
     Dickens' pen."--_Literary World._


     +The Little Princess of Tower Hill.+ By L. T. MEADE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "This is one of the prettiest books for children published, as
     pretty as a pond-lily, and quite as fragrant. Nothing could be
     imagined more attractive to young people than such a combination
     of fresh pages and fair pictures; and while children will
     rejoice over it--which is much better than crying for it--it is
     a book that can be read with pleasure even by older boys and
     girls."--_Boston Advertiser._


     +Honor Bright+; or, The Four-Leaved Shamrock. By the Author
     of "One of a Covey," "Miss Toosey's Mission," etc., etc. With
     full-page Illustrations, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "It requires a special talent to describe the sayings and doings
     of children, and the author of 'Honor Bright,' 'One of a Covey,'
     possesses that talent in no small degree."--_Literary Churchman._

     "A cheery, sensible, and healthy tale."--_The Times._


     +The Cuckoo Clock.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. With
     Illustrations by WALTER CRANE. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "A beautiful little story. It will be read with delight by every
     child into whose hands it is placed.... The author deserves all
     the praise that has been, is, and will be bestowed on 'The Cuckoo
     Clock.' Children's stories are plentiful, but one like this is not
     to be met with every day."--_Pall Mall Gazette._


     +Girl Neighbors+; or, The Old Fashion and the New. By
     SARAH TYTLER. With full-page Illustrations by C. T. GARLAND.
     12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "One of the most effective and quietly humorous of Miss Tytler's
     stories. 'Girl Neighbors' is a pleasant comedy, not so much of
     errors as of prejudices got rid of, very healthy, very agreeable,
     and very well written."--_Spectator._


     +The Little Lame Prince.+ By MISS MULOCK. Illustrated,
     cloth, price 75 cents.

     "No sweeter--that is the proper word--Christmas story for the
     little folks could easily be found, and it is as delightful for
     older readers as well. There is a moral to it which the reader
     can find out for himself, if he chooses to think."--_Herald_,
     Cleveland.


     +The Adventures of a Brownie.+ As Told to my Child. By
     MISS MULOCK. Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "The author of this delightful little book leaves it in doubt all
     through whether there actually is such a creature in existence as
     a Brownie, but she makes us hope that there might be."--_Standard,
     Chicago._


     +Only a Girl+: A Story of a Quiet Life. A Tale of Brittany.
     Adapted from the French by C. A. JONES. Illustrated,
     12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "We can thoroughly recommend this brightly written and homely
     narrative."--_Saturday Review._


     +Little Rosebud+; or, Things Will Take a Turn. By
     BEATRICE HARRADEN. Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "A most delightful little book.... Miss Harraden is so bright, so
     healthy, and so natural withal that the book ought, as a matter of
     duty, to be added to every girl's library in the land."--_Boston
     Transcript._


     +Little Miss Joy.+ By EMMA MARSHALL. Illustrated,
     12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "A very pleasant and instructive story, told by a very charming
     writer in such an attractive way as to win favor among its young
     readers. The illustrations add to the beauty of the book."--_Utica
     Herald._


     +Little Lucy's Wonderful Globe.+ By CHARLOTTE M. YONGE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "This story is unique among tales intended for children, alike for
     pleasant instruction, quaintness of humor, gentle pathos, and the
     subtlety with which lessons moral and otherwise are conveyed to
     children, and perhaps to their seniors as well."--_The Spectator._


     +Joan's Adventures at the North Pole and Elsewhere.+ By
     ALICE CORKRAN. Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "Wonderful as the adventures of Joan are, it must be admitted that
     they are very naturally worked out and very plausibly presented.
     Altogether this is an excellent story for girls."--_Saturday
     Review._


     +Count Up the Sunny Days+: A Story for Boys and Girls. By
     C. A. JONES. With full-page Illustrations, 12mo, cloth,
     price 75 cents.

     "An unusually good children's story."--_Glasgow Herald._


     +Sue and I.+ By MRS. O'REILLY. Illustrated, 12mo,
     cloth, price 75 cents.

     "A thoroughly delightful book, full of sound wisdom as well as
     fun."--_Athenæum._


     +Alice's Adventures in Wonderland.+ By LEWIS CARROLL.
     With 42 Illustrations by JOHN TENNIEL. 12mo, cloth, price 75 cents.

     "From first to last, almost without exception, this story is
     delightfully droll, humorous and illustrated in harmony with the
     story."--_New York Express._


     +Celtic Fairy Tales.+ Edited by JOSEPH JACOBS.
     Illustrated by J. D. BATTEN. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "A stock of delightful little narratives gathered chiefly from the
     Celtic-speaking peasants of Ireland."--_Daily Telegraph._

     "A perfectly lovely book. And oh! the wonderful pictures inside.
     Get this book if you can; it is capital, all through."--_Pall Mall
     Budget._


     +English Fairy Tales.+ Edited by JOSEPH JACOBS.
     Illustrated by J. D. BATTEN. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "The tales are simply delightful. No amount of description can do
     them justice. The only way is to read the book through from cover
     to cover."--_Magazine and Book Review._

     "The book is intended to correspond to 'Grimm's Fairy Tales,' and
     it must be allowed that its pages fairly rival in interest those
     of the well-known repository of folk-lore."--_Sydney Morning
     Herald._


     +Indian Fairy Tales.+ Edited by JOSEPH JACOBS.
     Illustrated by J. D. BATTEN. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "Mr. Jacobs brings home to us in a clear and intelligible manner
     the enormous influence which 'Indian Fairy Tales' have had upon
     European literature of the kind."--_Gloucester Journal._

     "The present combination will be welcomed not alone by the little
     ones for whom it is specially combined, but also by children of
     larger growth and added years."--_Daily Telegraph._


     +The Blue Fairy Book.+ Edited by ANDREW LANG.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "The tales are simply delightful. No amount of description can do
     them justice. The only way is to read the book through from cover
     to cover."--_Magazine and Book Review._


     +The Green Fairy Book.+ Edited by ANDREW LANG.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "The most delightful book of fairy tales, taking form and contents
     together, ever presented to children."--E. S. HARTLAND,
     in _Folk-Lore_.


     +The Yellow Fairy Book.+ Edited by ANDREW LANG.
     Profusely Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "As a collection of fairy tales to delight children of all ages
     ranks second to none."--_Daily Graphic_ (with illustrations).


     +Through the Looking Glass, and What Alice Found There.+
     By LEWIS CARROLL. With 50 Illustrations by JOHN TENNIEL.

     "A delight alike to the young people and their elders, extremely
     funny both in text and illustrations."--_Boston Express._


     +The Heir of Redclyffe.+ By CHARLOTTE M. YONGE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "A narrative full of interest from first, to last. It is told
     clearly and in a straightforward manner and arrests the attention
     of the reader at once, so that one feels afresh the unspeakable
     pathos of the story to the end."--_London Graphic._


     +The Dove in the Eagle's Nest.+ By CHARLOTTE M. YONGE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "Among all the modern writers we believe Miss Yonge first, not in
     genius but in this, that she employs her great abilities for a
     high and noble purpose. We know of few modern writers whose works
     may be so safely commended as hers."--_Cleveland Times._


     +A Sweet Girl Graduate.+ By L. T. MEADE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "One of this popular author's best. The characters are well
     imagined and drawn. The story moves with plenty of spirit
     and the interest does not flag until the end too quickly
     comes."--_Providence Journal._


     +The Palace Beautiful+: A Story for Girls. By L. T. MEADE.
     Illustrated, cloth, 12mo, price $1.00.

     "A bright and interesting story. The many admirers of Mrs. L.
     T. Meade in this country will be delighted with the 'Palace
     Beautiful' for more reasons than one."--_New York Recorder._


     +A World of Girls+: The Story of a School. By L. T. MEADE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "One of those wholesome stories which it does one good to read. It
     will afford pure delight to her numerous readers."--_Boston Home
     Journal._


     +The Lady of the Forest+: A Story for Girls. By L. T. MEADE.
     Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "This story is written in the author's well-known, fresh and easy
     style. All girls fond of reading will be charmed by this well
     written story. It is told with the author's customary grace and
     spirit."--_Boston Times._


     +At the Back of the North Wind.+ By GEORGE MACDONALD.
     Illustrated by GEORGE GROVES. 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "A very pretty story, with much of the freshness and vigor of Mr.
     Macdonald's earlier work.... It is a sweet, earnest, and wholesome
     fairy story, and the quaint native humor is delightful. A most
     delightful volume for young readers."--_Philadelphia Times._


     +The Water Babies+: A Fairy Tale for a Land Baby. By
     CHARLES KINGSLEY. Illustrated, 12mo, cloth, price $1.00.

     "The strength of his work, as well as its peculiar charms, consist
     in his description of the experiences of a youth with life under
     water in the luxuriant wealth of which he revels with all the
     ardor of a poetical nature."--_New York Tribune._




The "Little Men" Series.

Uniform Cloth Binding.

Profusely Illustrated.

PRICE 75 CENTS PER COPY.


This series of books has been selected from the writings of a large
number of popular authors of juvenile stories, and are particularly
adapted to interest and supply attractive reading for young boys. The
books are profusely illustrated, and any one seeking to find a book to
give a young boy cannot make a mistake by selecting from the following
list of titles.

[Illustration]

+_Black Beauty._+ The Autobiography of a Horse. By ANNA SEWELL.
Illustrated cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Carrots_+: Just a Little Boy. By MRS. MOLESWORTH.
Illustrated, cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Chunk, Fusky and Snout._+ A Story of Wild Pigs for Little
People. By GERALD YOUNG. Illus., cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Daddy's Boy._+ By L. T. MEADE. Illus., cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Geoff and Jim._+ A Story of School Life. By ISMAY THORN.
Illustrated, cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Jackanapes._+ By JULIANA HORATIA EWING. Illustrated,
cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Jack_+: A Topsy Turvy Story. By C. M. CRAWLEY-BOEVEY.
Illustrated, cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Larry's Luck._+ By the author of "Miss Toosey's Mission," "Tom's
Opinion," "One of a Covey," etc. Illustrated, cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Mopsa the Fairy._+ By JEAN INGELOW. Illustrated cloth,
price 75 cents.

+_Peter the Pilgrim._+ The Story of a Boy and His Pet Rabbit. By
L. T. MEADE. Illustrated by GORDON BROWNE, cloth, price 75 cents.

+_Tom's Opinion._+ By the author of "Miss Toosey's Mission," "One
of a Covey," etc. Illustrated, cloth, price 75 cents.

+_We and the World._+ A Story for Boys. By JULIANA HORATIA
EWING. Illustrated, cloth, price 75 cents.


For sale by all booksellers, or sent postpaid on receipt of price by
the publisher, +A. L. BURT, 97 Reade Street, New York+.




THE "LITTLE WOMEN" SERIES.

Uniform Cloth Binding.

Profusely Illustrated.


A series of most delightful stories for young girls. Selected from
the best-known writers for children. These stories are narrated in a
simple and lively fashion and cannot but prove irresistible with the
little ones, while throughout the volumes there is a comprehension of
and sympathy with child thought and feeling that is almost as rare out
of books as in. These stories are sunny, interesting, and thoroughly
winsome and wholesome.

[Illustration]

+Adventures of a Brownie+, As Told to My Child. By MISS MULOCK.
Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Alice's Adventures in Wonderland.+ By LEWIS CARROLL. With 42
Illustrations by John Tenniel. Price 75 cents.

+Birdie.+ A Tale of Child Life. By H. L. CHILDE-PEMBERTON. Illustrated.
Price 5 cents.

+Count Up the Sunny Days.+ A Story for Girls. By C. A. JONES.
Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Cuckoo Clock, The.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. With 7 Illustrations by Walter
Crane. Price 75 cents.

+Down the Snow Stairs+; or, From Good Night to Good Morning. By ALICE
CORKRAN. With 60 Illustrations by Gordon Browne. Price 75c.

+Joan's Adventures.+ At the North Pole and Elsewhere. By ALICE CORKRAN.
Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Little Lame Prince+, and His Traveling Cloak. By MISS MULOCK.
Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Little Miss Joy.+ By EMMA MARSHALL. Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Little Miss Peggy.+ Only a Nursery Story. By MRS. MOLESWORTH. With 13
Illustrations by Walter Crane. Price 75 cents.

+Little Princess of Tower Hill.+ By L. T. MEADE. Illustrated. Price 75
cents.

+Little Sunshine's Holiday.+ A Picture from Life. By MISS MULOCK.
Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Little Lucy's Wonderful Globe.+ By CHARLOTTE M. YONGE. Illustrated.
Price 75 cents.

+Little Rosebud+; or, Things Will Take a Turn. By BEATRICE HARRADEN.
Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+One of a Covey.+ By the author of "Honor Bright." With 19
Illustrations by H. J. A. MILES. Price 75 cents.

+Rosy.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. With 8 Illustrations by Walter Crane.
Price 75 cents.

+Sweet Content.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. With 20 Illustrations by W.
Rainey. Price 75 cents.

+Sue and I.+ By MRS. ROBERT O'REILLY. Illustrated. Price 75 cents.

+Tapestry Room, The.+ By MRS. MOLESWORTH. Illustrated. Price 75 cts.

+Through the Looking-Glass+, and What Alice Found There. By LEWIS
CARROLL. With 50 Illustrations by John Tenniel. Price 75 cents.


_+For sale by all booksellers, or sent postpaid on receipt of price
by the publisher, A. L. BURT, 97 Reade Street, New York.+_




THE ALGER SERIES for BOYS

Uniform with This Volume.

This series affords wholesome reading for boys and girls, and all
volumes are extremely interesting.--_Cincinnati Commercial-Gazette._


     +JOE'S LUCK; or, A Brave Boy's Adventurer, in California.+ By
     HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +JULIAN MORTIMER; or, A Brave Boy's Struggles for Home and
     Fortune.+ By HARRY CASTLEMON.

     +ADRIFT IN THE WILDS; or, The Adventures of Two Shipwrecked
     Boys.+ By EDWARD S. ELLIS.

     +FRANK FOWLER, THE CASH BOY.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +GUY HARRIS, THE RUNAWAY.+ By HARRY CASTLEMON.

     +THE SLATE-PICKER; A Story of a Boy's Life in the Coal
     Mines.+ By HARRY PRENTICE.

     +TOM TEMPLE'S CAREER.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +TOM, THE READY; or, Up from the Lowest.+ By RANDOLPH HILL.

     +THE CASTAWAYS; or, On the Florida Reefs.+ By JAMES OTIS.

     +CAPTAIN KIDD'S GOLD. The True Story of an Adventurous Sailor
     Boy.+ By JAMES FRANKLIN FITTS.

     +TOM THATCHER'S FORTUNE.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +LOST IN THE CANON. The Story of Sam Willett's Adventures on the
     Great Colorado of the West.+ By ALFRED R. CALHOUN.

     +A YOUNG HERO; or, Fighting to Win.+ By EDWARD S. ELLIS.

     +THE ERRAND BOY; or, How Phil Brent Won Success.+ By
     HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +THE ISLAND TREASURE; or, Harry Darrel's Fortune.+ By
     FRANK H. CONVERSE.

     +A RUNAWAY BRIG; or, An Accidental Cruise.+ By JAMES OTIS.

     +A JAUNT THROUGH JAVA. The Story of a Journey to the Sacred
     Mountain by Two American Boys.+ By E. S. ELLIS.

     +CAPTURED BY APES; or, How Philip Garland Became King of
     Apeland.+ By HARRY PRENTICE.

     +TOM THE BOOT-BLACK; or, The Road to Success.+ By HORATIO
     ALGER, JR.

     +ROY GILBERT'S SEARCH. A Tale of the Great Lakes.+ By
     WILLIAM P. CHIPMAN.

     +THE TREASURE-FINDERS. A Boy's Adventures in Nicaragua.+ By
     JAMES OTIS.

     +BUDD BOYD'S TRIUMPH; or, The Boy Firm of Fox Island.+ By
     WILLIAM P. CHIPMAN.

     +TONY, THE HERO; or, A Brave Boy's Adventures with a Tramp.+
     By HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +CAPTURED BY ZULUS. A Story of Trapping in Africa.+ By
     HARRY PRENTICE.

     +THE TRAIN BOY.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +DAN THE NEWSBOY.+ By HORATIO ALGER, JR.

     +SEARCH FOR THE SILVER CITY. A Story of Adventure in
     Yucatan.+ By JAMES OTIS.

     +THE BOY CRUISERS; or, Paddling in Florida.+ By ST.
     GEORGE RATHBORNE.


_+The above stories are printed on extra paper, and bound in Handsome
Cloth Binding, in all respects uniform with this volume, at $1.00 per
copy.+_


_For sale by all Booksellers, or will be sent post-paid on receipt of
price, by the publisher, A. L. BURT, 66 Reade St., New York._




+-------------------------------------------------+
|Transcriber's note:                              |
|                                                 |
|Obvious typographic errors have been corrected.  |
|                                                 |
|A Table of Contents has been added.              |
|                                                 |
+-------------------------------------------------+